Skip to main content

Full text of "The copy-cat & other stories"

See other formats


CORNELL 

UNIVERSITY 

LIBRARY 




BOUGHT WITH THE INCOME 
OF THE SAGE ENDOWMENT 
FUND GIVEN IN 1891 BY 

HENRY WILLIAMS SAGE 



Cornell University Library 
PS 1712.C75 




3 1924 021 974 195 




Cornell University 
jbrary 



The original of tliis book is in 
the Cornell University Library. 

There are no known copyright restrictions in 
the United States on the use of the text. 



http://www.archive.org/details/cu31 924021 9741 95 




[See paRe 350 
HE TOOK HER BY THE ARM AND LED HER INTO THE HOUSE 



^^eCOPYCAT 
& Other Stones 

BY 

MARY E. WILKINS FREEMAN 



AUTHOR OF 
"JEROME: — A POOR MAN" 
"A HUMBLE romance" ETC. 



ILLUSTRATED 




HARPER Sf BROTHERS PUBLISHERS 

NEW YORK AND LONDON 

M C M X I V 



COPYRIGHT, 1910, 1911, 1912. 1913. 1914. BY HARPER & BROTHERS 



PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA 
PUBLISHED SEPTEMBER, 1914 



CONTENTS 



PAGE 



I. The Copy-Cat . . i 

II. The Cock of the Walk ... .... 33 

III. JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 55 

IV. Daniel and Little Dan'l 83 

V. Big Sister Solly . 107 

VI. Little Lucy Rose 137 

VII. Noblesse .... . . ... 163 

VIII. Coronation . . 183 

IX. The Amethyst Comb . .... 211 

X. The Umbrella Man .... . . . 237 

XI. The Balking of Christopher 267 

XII. Dear Annie . . 293 



ILLUSTRATIONS 

He Took Her by the Arm and Led Her into 

THE House Frontispiece 

Lily Proceeded to Unfold a Plan Naughtily 

Ingenious . . Facing p. 24 

He Realized that the Fear of His Whole Life 

WAS Overcome For Ever " 104 

A Little Peal of Laughter Came from the 

Soft Muslin Folds " 134 

Viola May had Come Home Again .... " i6o 
"You Needn't Talk. You Wanted Tom Hop- 

kinson Yourself" " 186 

"We Sha'n't be Rolling in Riches, but We 

Can be Comfortable" " 264 

"First Time I Fully Sensed I was Something 

More than Just a Man" " 284 



THE COPY-CAT 



THE COPY-CAT 



THAT affair of Jim Simmons's cats never became 
known. Two little boys and a little girl can 
keep a secret — that is, sometimes. The two little 
boys had the advantage of the little girl because they 
could talk over the affair together, and the little 
girl, Lily Jennmgs, had no intimate girl friend to 
tempt her to confidence. She had only little Amelia 
Wheeler, commonly called by the pupils of Madame's 
school "The Copy-Cat." 

Amelia was an odd little girl — that is, everybody 
called her odd. She was that rather unusual crea- 
ture, a child with a definite ideal; and that ideal was 
Lily Jennings. However, nobody knew that. If 
Amelia's mother, who was a woman of strong charac- 
tef, had suspected, she would have taken strenuous 
measures to prevent such a peculiar state of affairs; 
the more so because she herself did not in the least 
approve of Lily Jennings. Mrs. Diantha Wheeler 
(AmeHa's father had died when she was a baby) 
often remarked to her own mother, Mrs. Stark, and 
to her mother-in-law, Mrs. Samuel Wheeler, that she 
did not feel that Mrs. Jennings was bringing up Lily 
exactly as she should. "That child thinks entirely 

3 



THE COPY-CAT 

too much of her looks," said Mrs. Diantha. "When 
she walks past here she switches those ridiculous 
frilled frocks of hers as if she were entering a ball- 
room, and she tosses her head and looks about to see 
if anybody is watching her. If I were to see Amelia 
doing such things I should be very firm with her." 

"Lily Jennings is a very pretty child," said 
Mother-in-law Wheeler, with an under-meaning, and 
Mrs. Diantha flushed. Amelia did not in the least 
resemble the Wheelers, who were a handsome set. 
She looked remarkably like her mother, who was a 
plain woman, only little AmeHa did not have a square 
chin. Her chin was pretty and round, with a little 
dimple in it. In fact, Amelia's chin was the pretti- 
est feature she had. Her hair was phenomenally 
straight. It would not even yield to hot curling- 
irons, which her grandmother Wheeler had tried sur- 
reptitiously several times when there was a Httle 
girls' party. "I never saw such hair as that poor 
child has in all my hfe," she told the other grand- 
mother, Mrs. Stark. "Have the Starks always had 
such very straight hair.?" 

Mrs. Stark stiffened her chin. Her own hair was 
very straight. "I don't know," said she, "that the 
Starks have had any straighter hair than other 
people. If Amelia does not have anything worse to 
contend with than straight hair I rather think she 
will get along in the world as well as most people." 

"It's thin, too," said Grandmother Wheeler, with 
a sigh, "and it hasn't a mite of color. Oh, well, 
Amelia is a good child, and beauty isn't everything." 
Grandmother Wheeler said that as if beauty were 

4 



THE COPY-CAT 

a great deal, and Grandmother Stark arose and shook 
out her black silk skirts. She had money, and loved 
to dress in rich black silks and laces. 

"It is very little, very little indeed," said she, and 
she eyed Grandmother Wheeler's lovely old face, 
like a wrinkled old rose as to color, faultless as to 
feature, and swept about by the loveliest waves of 
shining silver hair. 

Then she went out of the room, and Grandmother 
Wheeler, left alone, smiled. She knew the worth of 
beauty for those who possess it and those who do not. 
She had never been quite reconciled to her son's 
marrying such a plain girl as Diantha Stark, although 
she had money. She considered beauty on the 
whole as a more valuable asset than mere gold. 
She regretted always that poor little Amelia, her 
only grandchild, was so very plain-looking. She 
always knew that Amelia was very plain, and yet 
sometimes the child puzzled her. She seemed to see 
reflections of beauty, if not beauty itself, in the 
little colorless face, in the figure, with its too-large 
joints and utter absence of curves. She sometimes 
even wondered privately if some subtle resemblance 
to the handsome Wheelers might not be in the child 
and yet appear. But she was mistaken. What she 
saw was pure mimicry of a beautiful ideal. 

Little Amelia tried to stand like Lily Jennings; 
she tried to walk like her; she tried to smile like 
her; she made endeavors, very often futile, to dress 
like her. Mrs. Wheeler did not in the least approve 
of furbelows for children. Poor little Amelia went 
clad in severe simplicity; durable woolen frocks in 

S 



THE COPY-CAT 

winter, and washable, unfadable, and non-soil-show- 
ing frocks in summer. She, although her mother had 
perhaps more money wherewith to dress her than had 
any of the other mothers, was the plainest-clad little 
girl in school. Amelia, moreover, never tore a frock, 
and, as she did not grow rapidly, one lasted several 
seasons. Lily Jennings was destructive, although 
dainty. Her pretty clothes were renewed every 
year. Amelia was helpless before that problem. 
For a little girl burning with aspirations to be and 
look like another little girl who was beautiful and 
wore beautiful clothes, to be obliged to set forth for 
Mada/ne's on a lovely spring morning, when thin 
attire was in evidence, dressed in dark-blue-and- 
white-checked gingham, which she had worn for 
three summers, and with sleeves which, even to 
childish eyes, were anachronisms, was a trial. Then 
to see Lily flutter in a frock like a perfectly new white 
flower was torture; not because of jealousy — ^Amelia 
was not jealous; but she so admired the other little 
girl, and so loved her, and so wanted to be like her. 
As for Lily, she hardly ever noticed Amelia. She 
was not aware that she herself was an object of 
adoration; for she was a little girl who searched for 
admiration in the eyes of little boys rather than 
little girls, although very innocently. She always 
glanced slyly at Johnny Trumbull when she wore a 
pretty new frock, to see if he noticed. He never did, 
and she was sharp enough to know it. She was also 
child enough not to care a bit, but to take a queer 
pleasure in the sensation of scorn which she felt in 
consequence. She would eye Johnny from head to 

6 



THE COPY-CAT 

foot, his boy's clothing somewhat spotted, his bulging 
pockets, his always dusty shoes, and when he twisted 
uneasily, not understanding why, she had a thrill 
of purely feminine dehght. It was on one such occa- 
sion that she first noticed Amelia Wheeler particularly. 

It was a lovely warm morning in May, and Lily 
was a darhng to behold — in a big hat with a wreath 
of blue flowers, her hair tied with enormous blue silk 
bows, her short skirts frilled with eyelet embroidery, 
her slender silk legs, her little white sandals. Ma- 
dame's maid had not yet struck the Japanese gong, 
and all the pupils were out on the lawn, Amelia, in 
her clean, ugly gingham and her serviceable brown 
sailor hat, hovering near Lily, as usual, like a common, 
very plain butterfly near a particularly resplendent 
blossom. Lily really noticed her. She spoke to her 
confidentially; she recognized her fully as another of 
her own sex, and presumably of similar opinions. 

"Ain't boys ugly, anyway?" inquired Lily of 
Amelia, and a wonderful change came over Amelia. 
Her sallow cheeks bloomed; her eyes showed blue 
glitters; her little skinny figure became instinct with 
nervous life. She smiled charmingly, with such 
eagerness that it smote with pathos and bewitched. 

"Oh yes, oh yes," she agreed, in a voice like a quick 
flute obbHgato. "Boys are ugly." 

"Such clothes!" said Lily. 

"Yes, such clothes!" said Amelia. 

"Always spotted," said Lily. 

"Always covered all over with spots," said Ameha. 

"And their pockets always full of horrid things," 
said Lily. 

7 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Yes," said Amelia. 

Amelia glanced openly at Johnny Trumbull; Lily 
with a sidewise effect. 

Johnny had heard every word. Suddenly he arose 
to action and knocked down Lee Westminster, and 
sat on him. 

"Lemme up!" said Lee. 

Johnny had no quarrel whatever with Lee. He 
grinned, but he sat still. Lee, the sat-upon, was a 
sharp little boy. "Showing off before the gals!" he 
said, in a thin whisper. 

"Hush up!" returned Johnny. 

"Will you give me a writing-pad — I lost rnine, and 
mother said I couldn't have another for a week if I 
did — if I don't holler?" inquired Lee. 

"Yes. Hush up!" 

Lee lay still, and Johnny continued to sit upon his 
prostrate form. Both were out of sight of Madame's 
windows, behind a clump of the cedars which graced 
her lawn. 

"Always fighting," said Lily, with a fine crescendo 
of scorn. She lifted her chin high, and also her nose. 

"Always fighting," said Amelia, and also lifted her 
chin and nose. Amelia was a born mimic. She 
actually looked like Lily, and she spoke like her. 

Then Lily did a wonderful thing. She doubled her 
soft little arm into an inviting loop for Ameha's little 
claw of a hand. 

"Come along, Amelia Wheeler," said she. "We 
don't want to stay near horrid, fighting boys. We 
will go by ourselves." ^ 

And they went. Madame had a headache that 



THE COPY-CAT 

morning, and the Japanese gong did not ring for 
fifteen minutes longer. During that time Lily and 
Amelia sat together on a little rustic bench under a 
twinkling poplar, and they talked, and a sort of 
miniature sun-and-satellite relation was established 
between them, altliough neither was aware of it. 
Lih', being on the whole a very normal little girl, and 
not disposed to even a full estimate of herself as 
compared with others of her own sex, did not dream 
of Amelia's adoration, and Amelia, being rarely 
destitute of self-consciousness, did not understand the 
whole scope of her own sentiments. It was quite 
sufiicient that she was seated close to this wonderful 
Lily, and agreeing with her to the verge of immo- 
lation. 

"Of course," said Lily, "girls are pretty, and boys 
are just as ugly as they can be." 

"Oh yes," said AmeHa, fervently. 

"But," said Lily, thoughtfully, "it is queer how 
Johnny Trumbull always comes out ahead in a fight, 
and he is not so very large, either." 

"Yes," said Amelia, but she realized a pang of 
jealous^-. "Girls could fight, I suppose," said she. 

"Oh ^-es, and get their clothes all torn and mess}," 
said Lilr. 

"I shouldn't care," said AmeHa. Then she added, 
with a little toss, "I almost know I could fight." 
The thought even floated through her wicked Httle 
mind that fighting might be a method of wearing out 
obnoxious and durable clothes. 

"You!" said Lily, and the scorn in her voice wilted 
Amelia. 

9 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Maybe I couldn't," said she. 

"Of course you couldn't, and if you could, what a 
sight you'd be. Of course it wouldn't hurt your 
clothes'as much as some, because your mother dresses 
you in strong things, but you'd be sure to get black 
and blue, and what would be the use, anyway.? 
You couldn't be a boy, if you did fight." 

"No. I know I couldn't." 

"Then what is the use.? We are a good deal 
prettier than boys, and cleaner, and have nicer 
manners, and we must be satisfied." 

"You are prettier," said Amelia, with a look of 
worshipful admiration at Lily's sweet little face. 

'You are prettier," said Lily. Then she added, 
equivocally, "Even the very homeliest girl is prettier 
than a boy." 

Poor Amelia, it was a good deal for her to be called 
prettier than a very dusty boy in a fight. She fairly 
dimpled with delight, and again she smiled charm- 
ingly. Lily eyed her critically. 

"You aren't so very homely, after all, Amelia," 
she said. "You needn't think you are." 

Amelia smiled again. 

"When you look like you do now you are real 
pretty," said Lily, not knowing or even suspecting 
the truth, that she was regarding in the face of this 
little ardent soul her own, as in a mirror. 

However, it was after that episode that Amelia 
Wheeler was called "Copy-Cat." The two little 
girls entered Madame's select school arm in arm, 
when the musical gong sounded, and behind them 
came Lee Westminster and Johnny Trumbull, sur- 

10 



THE COPY-CAT 

reptitiously dusting their garments, and ever after 
the fact of Ameha's adoration and imitation of Lily 
Jennings was evident to all. Even Madame became 
aware of it, and held conferences with two of the 
under teachers. 

"It is not at all healthy for one child to model 
herself so entirely upon the pattern of another," said 
Miss Parmalee. 

"Most certainly it is not," agreed Miss Acton, the 
music-teacher. 

"Why, that poor little Amelia Wheeler had the 
rudiments of a fairh'^ good contralto. I had begun 
to wonder if the poor child might not be able at 
least to sing a little, and so make up for — other 
things; and now she tries to sing high like Lily Jen- 
nings, and I simply cannot prevent it. She has 
heard Lily play, too, and has lost her own touch, and 
now it is neither one thing nor the other." 

"I might speak to her mother," said Madame, 
thoughtfully. Madame was American born, but she 
married a French gentleman, long since deceased, 
and his name sounded well on her circulars. She 
and her two under teachers were drinking tea in her 
library. 

Miss Parmalee, who was a true lover of her pupils, 
gasped at Madame's proposition. "Whatever you 
do, please do not tell that poor child's mother," said 
she. 

"I do not think it would be quite wise, if I may 
venture to express an opinion," said Miss Acton, 
who was a timid soul, and always incUned to shy at 
her own ideas. 

II 



THE COPY-CAT 

"But why?" asked Madame. 

"Her mother," said Miss Parmalee, "is a quite 
remarkable woman, with great strength of character, 
but she would utterly fail to grasp the situation." 

"I must confess," said Madame, sipping her tea, 
"that I fail to understand it. Why any child not an 
absolute idiot should so lose her own identity in an- 
other's absolutely bewilders me. I never heard of 
such a case." 

Miss Parmalee, who had a sense of humor, laughed 
a little. "It is bewildering," she admitted. "And 
now the other children see how it is, and call her 
'Copy-Cat' to her face, but she does not mind. I 
doubt if she understands, and neither does Lily, for 
that matter. Lily Jennings is full of mischief, but 
she moves in straight lines; she is not conceited or 
self-conscious, and she really likes Amelia, without 
knowing why." 

"I fear Lily will lead Amelia into mischief," said 
Madame, "and Amelia has always been such a good 
child." 

"Lily will never mean to lead Amelia into mis- 
chief," said loyal Miss Parmalee. 

"But she will," said Madame. 

"If Lily goes, I cannot answer for Amelia's not 
following," admitted Miss Parmalee. 

"I regret it all very much indeed," sighed Ma- 
dame, "but it does seem to me still that AmeHa's 
mother — " 

"Amelia's mother would not even believe it, in 
the first place," said Miss Parmalee. 

"Well, there is something in that," admitted Ma- 

12 



THE COPY-CAT 

dame. "I n^vself could not even imagine such a 
situation. I would not know of it now, if you and 
Miss Acton had not told me." 

"There is not the slightest use in telling Amelia 
not to imitate Lih', because she does not know that 
she is imitating her," said Miss Parmalee. "If she 
were to be punished for it, she could never compre- 
hend the reason." 

"That is true," said Miss Acton. "I realize that 
when the poor child squeaks instead of singing. All 
I could think of this morning was a little mouse 
caught in a trap which she could not see. She does 
actually squeak! — and some of her low notes, al- 
though, of course, she is only a child, and has never 
attempted much, promised to be very good." 

"She will have to squeak, for all I can see," said 
Miss Parmalee. "It looks to me like one of those 
situations that no human being can change for better 
or worse." 

"I suppose you are right," said Madame, "but 
it is most unfortunate, and Mrs. ^^ heeler is such a 
superior woman, and Amelia is her only child, and 
this is such a ver^- subtle and regrettable affair. 
^^ ell, we have to leave a great deal to Providence." 

"If," said Miss Parmalee, "she could only get 
angry when she is called 'Copv-Cat.'" Miss Parma- 
lee laughed, and so did Miss Acton. Then all the 
ladies had their cups refilled, and left Providence to 
look out for poor little Ameha Wheeler, in her mad 
pursuit of her ideal in the shape of another little 
girl possessed of the exterior graces which she had 
not. 



THE COPY-CAT 

Meantime the little "Copy-Cat" had never been 
so happy. She began to improve in her looks also. 
Her grandmother Wheeler noticed it first, and spoke 
of it to Grandmother Stark. "That child may not 
be so plain, after all," said she. "I looked at her 
this morning when she started for school, and I 
thought for the first time that there was a Httle re- 
semblance to the Wheelers." 

Grandmother Stark sniffed, but she looked grati- 
fied. "I have been noticing it for some time," said 
she, "but as for looking like the Wheelers, I thought 
this morning for a minute that I actually saw my 
poor dear husband looking at me out of that blessed 
child's eyes." 

Grandmother Wheeler smiled her little, aggra- 
vating, curved, pink smile. 

But even Mrs. Diantha began to notice the change 
for the better in Amelia. She, however, attributed 
it to an increase of appetite and a system of deep 
breathing which she had herself taken up and en- 
joined Amelia to follow. Amelia was following Lily 
Jennings instead, but that her mother did not know. 
Still, she was gratified to see Amelia's little sallow 
cheeks taking on pretty curves and a soft bloom, 
and she was more inclined to listen when Grand- 
mother Wheeler ventured to approach the subject 
of Amelia's attire. 

"Ameha would not be so bad-looking if she were 
better dressed, Diantha," said she. 

Diantha lifted her chin, but she paid heed. "Why, 
does not Amelia dress perfectly well, mother?" she 
inquired. 

H 



THE COPY-CAT 

"She dresses well enough, but she needs more 
ribbons and ruffles." 

"I do not approve of so many ribbons and ruffles," 
said Mrs. Diantha. "Amelia has perfectly neat, 
fresh black or brown ribbons for her hair, and ruffles 
are not sanitary." 

"Ruffles are pretty," said Grandmother Wheeler, 
"and blue and pink are pretty colors. Now, that 
Jennings girl looks like a little picture." 

But that last speech of Grandmother Wheeler's 
undid all the previous good. Mrs. Diantha had an 
unacknowledged — even to herself — disapproval of 
Mrs. Jennings which dated far back in the past, for 
a reason which was quite unworthy of her and of her 
strong mind. When she and Lily's mother had been 
girls, she had seen Mrs. Jennings look like a picture, 
and had been perfecth' well aware that she herself 
fell far short of an artist's ideal. Perhaps if Mrs. 
Stark had believed in ruffles and ribbons, her daugh- 
ter might have had a different mind when Grand- 
mother \\ heeler had finished her little speech. 

As it was, Mrs. Diantha surveyed her small, pretty 
mother-in-law with dignified serenitj^, which savored 
only delicatel}'' of a snub. "I do not mvself approve 
of the wa}' in which Mrs. Jennings dresses her daugh- 
ter," said she, "and I do not consider that the child 
presents to a practical observer as good an appear- 
ance as my Amelia." 

Grandmother \\ heeler had a temper. It was a 
childish temper and soon over — still, a temper. 
"Lord," said she, "if j'ou mean to sa}' that you 
think your poor little snipe of a daughter, dressed 

IS 



THE COPY-CAT 

like a little maid-of-all-work, can compare with that 
lovely little Lily Jennings, who is dressed like a 
doll!—" 

"I do not wish that my daughter should be dressed 
like a doll," said Mrs. Diantha, coolly. 

"Well, she certainly isn't," said Grandmother 
Wheeler. "Nobody would ever take her for a doll 
as far as looks or dress are concerned. She may be 
good enough. I don't deny that Amelia is a good 
little girl, but her looks could be improved on." 

"Looks matter very httle," said Mrs. Diantha. 

"They matter very much," said Grandmother 
Wheeler, pugnaciously, her blue eyes taking on a 
peculiar opaque glint, as always when she lost her 
temper, "very much indeed. But looks can't be 
helped. If poor little Amelia wasn't born with pretty 
looks, she wasn't. But she wasn't born with such 
ugly clothes. She might be better dressed." 

"I dress my daughter as I consider best," said 
Mrs. Diantha. Then she left the room. 

Grandmother Wheeler sat for a few minutes, her 
blue eyes opaque, her little pink lips a straight line; 
then suddenly her eyes lit, and she smiled. "Poor 
Diantha," said she, "I remember how Henry used 
to like Lily Jennings's mother before he married 
Diantha. Sour grapes hang high." But Grand- 
mother Wheeler's beautiful old face was quite soft 
and gentle. From her heart she pitied the reacher 
after those high-hanging sour grapes, for Mrs. Dian- 
tha had been very good to her. 

Then Grandmother Wheeler, who had a mild 
persistency not evident to a casual observer, began 

i6 



THE COPY-CAT 

to make plans and lay plots. She was resolved, 
DIantha or not, that her granddaughter, her son's 
child, should have some fine feathers. The little 
conference had tfaken place in her own room, a large, 
sunny one, with a little storeroom opening from it. 
Presently Grandmother Wheeler rose, entered the 
storeroom, and began rummaging in some old trunks. 
Then followed days of secret work. Grandmother 
Wheeler had been noted as a fine needlewoman, 
and her hand had not yet lost its cunning. She had 
one of Amelia's ugly little ginghams, purloined from 
a closet, for size, and she worked two or three dainty 
wonders. She took Grandmother Stark into her 
confidence. Sometimes the two ladies, by reason 
of their age, found it possible to combine with good 
results. 

"Your daughter Diantha is one woman in a thou- 
sand," said Grandmother Wheeler, diplomatically, 
one day, "but she never did care much for clothes." 

"Diantha," returned Grandmother Stark, with a 
suspicious glance, "always realized that clothes were 
not the things that mattered." 

"And, of course, she is right," said Grandmother 
Wheeler, piously. "Your Diantha is one woman in 
a thousand. If she cared as much for fine clothes as 
some women, I don't know where we should all be. 
It would spoil poor little Amelia." 

"Yes, it would," assented Grandmother Stark. 
"Nothing spoils a little girl more than always to be 
thinking about her clothes." 

"Yes, I was looking at AmeHa the other day, and 
thinking how much more sensible she appeared in 
2 17 



THE COPY-CAT 

her plain gingham than Lily Jennings in all her 
ruffles and ribbons. Even if people were all notic- 
ing Lily, and praising her, thinks I to myself, 'How 
little difference such things really make. Even if 
our dear Amelia does stand to one side, and nobody 
notices her, what real matter is it.?'" Grandmother 
Wheeler was inwardly chuckling as she spoke. 

Grandmother Stark was at once alert. "Do you 
mean to say that Amelia is really not taken so much 
notice of because she dresses plainly.?" said she. 

"You don't mean that you don't know it, as ob- 
servant as you are?" replied Grandmother Wheeler. 

"Diantha ought not to let it go as far as that," said 
Grandmother Stark. Grandmother Wheeler looked 
at her queerly. "Why do you look at me like that?" 

"Well, I did something I feared I ought not to 
have done. And I didn't know what to do, but your 
speaking so makes me wonder — " 

"Wonder what?" 

Then Grandmother Wheeler went to her little 
storeroom and emerged bearing a box. She dis- 
played the contents — three charming little white 
frocks fluffy with lace and embroidery. 

"Did you make them?" 

"Yes, I did. I couldn't help it. I thought if the 
dear child never wore them, it would be some com- 
fort to know they were in the house." 

"That one needs a broad blue sash," said Grand- 
mother Stark. 

Grandmother Wheeler laughed. She took her impe- 
cuniosity easily. '*^I had to use what I had," said she. 

"I will get a blue sash for that one," said Grand- 

i8 



THE COPY-CAT 

mother Stark, "and a pink sash for that, and a flow- 
ered one for that." 

"Of course they will make all the difference," 
said Grandmother Wheeler. "Those beautiful sashes 
will really make the dresses." 

"I will get them," said Grandmother Stark, with 
decision. "I will go right down to Mann Brothers' 
store now and get them." 

"Then I will make the bows, and sew them on," 
replied Grandmother Wheeler, happily. 

It thus happened that little Amelia Wheeler was 
possessed of three beautiful dresses, although she 
did not know it. 

For a long time neither of the two conspiring 
grandmothers dared divulge the secret. Mrs. Dian- 
tha was a very determined woman, and even her 
own mother stood somewhat in awe of her. There- 
fore, little Amelia went to school during the spring 
term soberly clad as ever, and even on the festive 
last day wore nothing better than a new blue ging- 
ham, made too long, to allow for shrinkage, and new 
blue hair-ribbons. The two grandmothers almost 
wept in secret conclave over the lovely frocks which 
were not worn. 

"I respect Diantha," said Grandmother Wheeler. 
"You know that. She is one woman in a thousand, 
but I do hate to have that poor child go to school 
to-day with so many to look at her, and she dressed 
so unhke all the other httle girls." 

"Diantha has got so much sense, it makes her 
blind and deaf," declared Grandmother Stark. "I 
call it a shame, if she is my daughter." 

19 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Then you don't venture — " 

Grandmother Stark reddened. She did not like 
to own to awe of her daughter. "I venture, if that is 
all," said she, tartly. "You don't suppose I am 
afraid of Diantha? — but she would not let Amelia 
wear one of the dresses, anyway, and I don't want 
the child made any unhappier than she is." 

"Well, I will admit," replied Grandmother Wheel- 
er, "if poor Amelia knew she had these beautiful 
dresses and could not wear them she might feel 
worse about wearing that homely gingham." 

"Gingham!" fairly snorted Grandmother Stark. 
"I cannot see why Diantha thinks so much of ging- 
ham. It shrinks, anyway." 

Poor little Amelia did undoubtedly suffer on that 
last day, when she sat among the others gaily clad, 
and looked down at her own common little skirts. 
She was very glad, however, that she had not been 
chosen to do any of the special things which would 
have necessitated her appearance upon the little 
flower-decorated platform. She did not know of the 
conversation between Madame and her two as- 
sistants. 

"I would have Amelia recite a little verse or two," 
said Madame, "but how can I.?" Madame adored 
dress, and had a lovely new one of sheer dull-blue 
stuff, with touches of silver, for the last day. 

"Yes," agreed Miss Parmalee, "that poor child is 
sensitive, and for her to stand on the platform in 
one of those plain ginghams would be too cruel." 

"Then, too," said Miss Acton, "she would re- 
cite her verses exactly like Lily Jennings. She can 

20 



THE COPY-CAT 

make her voice exactly like Lily's now. Then every- 
body would laugh, and Amelia would not know why. 
She would think they were laughing at her dress, and 
that would be dreadful." 

If Ameha's mother could have heard that conver- 
sation everything would have been different, al- 
though it is puzzling to decide in what way. 

It was the last of the summer vacation in 
early September, just before school began, that a 
climax came to Ameha's idolatry and imitation of 
Lily. The Jenningses had not gone away that sum- 
mer, so the two little girls had been thrown together 
a good deal. Mrs. Diantha never went away during 
a summer. She considered it her duty to remain at 
home, and she was quite pitiless to herself when it 
came to a matter of duty. 

However, as a result she was quite ill during the 
last of August and the first of September. The sea- 
son had been unusually hot, and Mrs. Diantha had 
not spared herself from her duty on account of the 
heat. She would have scorned herself if she had done 
so. But she could not, strong-minded as she was, 
avert something like a heat prostration after a long 
walk under a burning sun, nor weeks of confinement 
and idleness in her room afterward. 

When September came, and a night or two of com- 
parative coolness, she felt stronger; still she was 
compelled by most unusual weakness to refrain from 
her energetic trot in her duty-path; and then it was 
that something happened. 

One afternoon Lily fluttered over to Amelia's, 
and Amelia, ever on the watch, spied her. 

21 



THE COPY-CAT 

"May I go out and see Lily?" she asked Grand- 
mother Stark. 

"Yes, but don't talk under the windows; your 
mother is asleep." 

Amelia ran out. 

"I declare," said Grandmother Stark to Grand- 
mother Wheeler, "I was half a mind to tell that 
child to wait a minute and sUp on one of those 
pretty dresses. I hate to have her go on the street 
in that old gingham, with that Jennings girl dressed 
up like a wax doll." 

"I know it." 

"And now poor Diantha is so weak— and asleep 
— ^it would not have annoyed her." 

"I know it." 

Grandmother Stark looked at Grandmother 
Wheeler. Of the two she possessed a greater share 
of original sin compared with the size of her soul. 
Moreover, she felt herself at liberty to circumvent 
her own daughter. Whispering, she unfolded a dar- 
ing scheme to the other grandmother, who stared 
at her aghast a second out of her lovely blue eyes, 
then laughed softly. 

"Very well," said she, "if you dare." 

"I rather think I dare!" said Grandmother Stark. 
"Isn't Diantha Wheeler my own daughter.?" Grand- 
mother Stark had grown much bolder since Mrs. 
Diantha had been ill. 

Meantime Lily and Amelia walked down the 
street until they came to a certain vacant lot inter- 
sected by a foot-path between tall, feathery grasses 
and goldenrod and asters and milkweed. They en- 

22 



THE COPY-CAT 

tered the foot-path, and swarms of little butterflies 
rose around them, and once in a while a protesting 
bumblebee. 

"I am afraid we will be stung b}- the bees," said 
Amelia. 

"Bumblebees never sting," said Lih'; and Amelia 
believed her. 

When the foot-path ended, there was the river- 
bank. The two little girls sat down under a clump 
of brook willows and talked, while the river, full of 
green and blue and golden lights, slipped past them 
and never stopped. 

Then Lily proceeded to unfold a plan, which was 
not philosophical, but naughtily ingenious. B}^ this 
time Lily knew very well that Amelia admired her, 
and imitated her as successful!}' as possible, consid- 
ering the drawback of dress and looks. 

When she had finished Amelia was quite pale. "I 
am afraid, I am afraid, Lily," said she. 

"What of?" 

"j\Iy mother will find out; besides, I am afraid 
it isn't right." 

"Who ever told you it was wrong .^" 

"Nobody ever did," admitted Ameha. 

"Well, then you haven't any reason to think it is," 
said Lily, triumphantly. "And how is your mother 
ever going to find it out?" 

"I don't know." 

"Isn't she ill in her room? And does she ever 
come to kiss you good night, the way m}- mother 
does, when she is well?" 

"No," admitted Amelia. 



THE COPY-CAT 

"And neither of your grandmothers?" 

"Grandmother Stark would think it was silly, 
like mother, and Grandmother Wheeler can't go up 
and down stairs very well." 

"I can't see but you are perfectly safe. I am the 
only one that runs any risk at all. I run a great deal 
of risk, but I am willing to take it," said Lily with 
a virtuous air. Lily had a small but rather involved 
scheme simply for her own ends, which did not seem 
to call for much virtue, but rather the contrary. 

Lily had overheard Arnold Carruth and Johnny 
Trumbull and Lee Westminster and another boy, 
Jim Patterson, planning a most delightful affair, 
which even in the cases of the boys was fraught with 
danger, secrecy, and doubtful rectitude. Not one 
of the four boys had had a vacation from the village 
that summer, and their. young minds had become 
charged, as it were, with the seeds of revolution and 
rebellion. Jim Patterson, the son of the rector, and 
of them all the most venturesome, had planned to 
take — he called it "take"; he meant to pay for it, 
anyway, he said, as soon as he could shake enough 
money out of his nickel savings-bank — one of his 
father's Plymouth Rock chickens and have a chicken- 
roast in the woods back of Dr. Trumbull's. He 
had planned for Johnny to take some ears of corn 
suitable for roasting from his father's garden; for 
Lee to take some cookies out of a stone jar in his 
mother's pantry; and for Arnold to take some pota- 
toes. Then they four would steal forth under cover 
of night, build a camp-fire, roast their spoils, and 
feast. 

24 










%■ i 



LILV FROCFFPFP TO LNF>'LP \ FL.W NAL\^HTIL\" INi^lMOL: 



THE COPY-CAT 

Lih- had resolved to be of the pam*. She resorted 
to no open methods; the stones of the fighting suf- 
fragettes were not for her, Httle hone^'-sweet, curled, 
and ruffled darling; rather the time-worn, if not 
time-sanctified, weapons of her sex, httle instruments 
of wiles, and tim- dodges, and tim' subterfuges, which 
would serve her best. 

"You know," she said to Amelia, 'S'ou don't look 
like me. Of course you know that, and that can't 
be helped; but ^'ou do walk like me, and talk like 
me, vou know that, because thev call you "Copv- 
Cat.'" 

"Yes, I know," said poor Amelia. 

''I don't mind if they do call you 'Copy-Cat,'" 
said Lily, magnanimously. ''I don't mind a bit. 
But, 3"ou see, my mother always comes up-stairs to 
kiss me good night after I have gone to bed, and to- 
morrow night she has a dinner-party, and she will 
surely be a little late, and I can't manage unless you 
help me. I wiU get one of my white dresses for 3-ou, 
and all you have to do is to climb out of your window 
into that cedar-tree — ^\'ou know you can climb down 
that, because you are so afraid of burglars climbing 
up — and you can slip on my dress; you had better 
throw it out of the window and not try to cHmb in 
it. because my dresses tear awful easy, and we might 
get caught that way. Then you just sneak down to 
our house, and I shall be outdoors; and when you 
go up-stairs, if the doors should be open, and any- 
bodv should call, you can answer just Hke me; and I 
have found that light curly wig Aunt Laura wore 
when she had her head shaved after she had a fever, 

-S 



THE COPY-CAT 

and you just put that on and go to bed, and mother 
will never know when she kisses you good night. 
Then after the roast I will go to your house, and 
climb up that tree, and go to bed in your room. And 
I will have one of your gingham dresses to wear, and 
very early in the morning I will get up, and you get 
up, and we both of us can get down the back stairs 
without being seen, and run home." 

Amelia was almost weeping. It was her worshiped 
Lily's plan, but she was horribly scared. "I don't 
know," she faltered. 

"Don't know! You've got to! You don't love 
me one single bit or you wouldn't stop to think about 
whether you didn't know." It was the world-old 
argument which floors love. Amelia succumbed. 

The next evening a frightened little girl clad in 
one of Lily Jennings's white embroidered frocks was 
racing to the Jenningses' house, and another little 
girl, not at all frightened, but enjoying the stimulus 
of mischief and unwontedness, was racing to the wood 
behind Dr. Trumbull's house, and that little girl was 
clad in one of Amelia Wheeler's ginghams. But the 
plan went all awry. 

Lily waited, snuggled up behind an alder-bush, 
and the boys came, one by one, and she heard this 
whispered, although there was no necessity for whis- 
pering, "Jim Patterson, where's that hen?" 

"Couldn't get her. Grabbed her, and all her tail- 
feathers came out in a bunch right in my hand, and 
she squawked so, father heard. He was in his study 
writing his sermon, and he came out, and if I hadn't 
hid behind the chicken-coop and then run I couldn't 

26 



THE COPY-CAT 

have got here. But I can't see as you've got any 
corn, Johnny Trumbull." 

"Couldn't. Every single ear was cooked for din- 
ner. " 

"I couldn't bring any cookies, either," said Lee 
Westminster; "there weren't zny cookies in the jar." 

"And I couldn't bring the potatoes, because the 
outside cellar door was locked," said Arnold Car- 
ruth. "I had to go down the back stairs and out 
the south door, and the inside cellar door opens out 
of our dining-room, and I daren't go in there." 

"Then we might as well go home," said Johnny 
Trumbull. "If I had been you, Jim Patterson, I 
would have brought that old hen if her tail-feathers 
had come out. Seems to me you scare awful easy." 

"Guess if 3'ou had heard her squawk!" said Jim, 
resentfully. "If you want to tr\' to lick me, come on, 
Johnny Trumbull. Guess you don't darse call me 
scared again. " 

Johnny eyed him standing there in the gloom. 
Jim was not large, but very wiry, and the ground was 
not suited for combat. Johnny, although a victor, 
would probabl}- go home considerably the worse in 
appearance; and he could anticipate the conse- 
quences were his father to encounter him. 

"Shucks!" said Johnny Trumbull, of the fine old 
Trumbull famih" and Madame's exclusive school. 
''Shucks! who wants ^our old hen? We had chicken 
for dinner, anyway-. " 

"So did we," said Arnold Carruth. 

"We did, and corn, " said Lee. 

"We did," said Jim. 



THE COPY-CAT 

Lily stepped forth from the alder-bush. "If," 
said she, "I were a boy, and had started to have a 
chicken-roast, I would have had a chicken-roast." 

But every boy, even the valiant Johnny Trum- 
bull, was gone in a mad scutter. This sudden appari- 
tion of a girl was too much for their nerves. They 
never even knew who the girl was, although little 
Arnold Carruth said she had looked to him like 
"Copy-Cat," but the others scouted the idea. 

Lily Jennings made the best of her way out of the 
wood across lots to the road. She was not in a par- 
ticularly enviable case. Amelia Wheeler was pre- 
sumably in her bed, and she saw nothing for it but 
to take the difficult way to Amelia's. 

Lily tore a great rent in the gingham going up the 
cedar-tree, but that was nothing to what followed. 
She entered through Amelia's window, her prim 
little room, to find herself confronted by Amelia's 
mother in a wrapper, and her two grandmothers. 
Grandmother Stark had over her arm a beautiful 
white embroidered dress. The two old ladies had 
entered the room in order to lay the white dress on 
a chair and take away Amelia's gingham, and there 
was no Amelia. Mrs. Diantha had heard the com- 
motion, and had risen, thrown on her wrapper, and 
come. Her mother had turned upon her. 

"It is all your fault, Diantha," she had declared. 

"My fault?" echoed Mrs. Diantha, bewildered. 
"Where is Amelia?" 

"We don't know," said Grandmother Stark, "but 
you have probably driven her away from home by 
your cruelty." 

28 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Cruelty?" 

"Yes. cruelty. What right had 3-ou to make that 
poor child look like a fright, so people laughed at 
her? We have made her some dresses that look 
decent, and had come here to leave them, and to 
take awa}' those old gingham things that look as if 
she lived in the almshouse, and leave these, so she 
would eitlier have to wear them or go without, when 
we found she had gone." 

It was at that crucial moment that Lily entered 
by way of the ■n'indow. 

"Here she is now," shrieked Grandmother Stark. 
"Amelia, where — " Then she stopped short. 

Everybody stared at Lih's beautiful face suddenly 
gone white. For once Lih' was frightened. She lost 
all self-control. She began to sob. She could scarce- 
h" tell the absurd story for sobs, but she told, ever}' 
word. 

Then, ■s^'ith a sudden boldness, she too turned on 
Mrs. Diantha. "They call poor Ameha 'Copy- 
Cat,'" said she, "and I don't believe she would ever 
have tried so hard to look like me only m}- mother 
dresses me so I look nice, and 30U send Amelia 
to school looking awfully." Then Lily sobbed 
again. 

"Mv Amelia is at your house, as I understand?" 
said Mrs. Diantha, in an awful voice. 

"Ye-es, ma-am." 

"Let me go," said Mrs. Diantha, violently, to 
Grandmother Stark, who tried to restrain her. Mrs. 
Diantha dressed herself and marched down the 
street, dragging Lily after her. The little girl had 

-9 



THE COPY-CAT 

to trot to keep up with the tall woman's strides, and 
all the way she wept. 

It was to Lily's mother's everlasting discredit, in 
Mrs. Diantha's opinion, but to Lily's wonderful re- 
lief, that when she heard the story, standing in the 
hall in her lovely dinner dress, with the strains of 
music floating from the drawing-room, and cigar 
smoke floating from the dining-room, she laughed. 
When Lily said, "And there wasn't even any chicken- 
roast, mother," she nearly had hysterics. 

"If you think this is a laughing matter, Mrs. Jen- 
nings, I do not," said Mrs. Diantha, and again her 
disHke and sorrow at the sight of that sweet, mirth- 
ful face was over her. It was a face to be loved, and 
hers was not. 

"Why, I went up-stairs and kissed the child good 
night, and never suspected," laughed Lily's mother. 

"I got Aunt Laura's curly, light wig for her," ex- 
plained Lily, and Mrs. Jennings laughed again. 

It was not long before AmeHa, in her gingham, 
went home, led by her mother — her mother, who 
was trembling with weakness now. Mrs. Diantha 
did not scold. She did not speak, but Amelia felt 
with wonder her little hand held very tenderly by 
her mother's long fingers. 

When at last she was undressed and in bed, Mrs. 
Diantha, looking very pale, kissed her, and so did 
both grandmothers. 

Amelia, being very young and very tired, went to 
sleep. She did not know that that night was to mark 
a sharp turn in her whole life. Thereafter she went 
to school "dressed like the best," and her mother 

30 



THE COPY-CAT 

petted her as nobody had ever known her mother 
could pet. 

It was not so very long afterward that Amelia, 
out of her own improvement in appearance, devel- 
oped a little stamp of individuality 

One da^' Lih^ wore a white frock with blue rib- 
bons, and Amelia wore one with coral pink. It was 
a particular da}' in school; there was company, and 
tea was served. 

"I told you I was going to wear blue ribbons," 
Lily whispered to Amelia. Amelia smiled lovingly 
back at her. 

"Yes, I know, but I thought I would wear pink." 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

DOWN the road, kicking up the dust until he 
marched, soldier - wise, in a cloud of it, that 
rose and grimed his moist face and added to the 
heavy, brown powder upon the wayside weeds and 
flowers, whistling a queer, tuneless thing, which 3-et 
contained definite sequences — the whistle of a bird 
rather than a bo}- — approached Johnny Trumbull, 
aged ten, small of his age, but accounted by his 
mates mighty. 

Johnny came of the best and oldest family in the 
village, but it was in some respects an undesirable 
family for a boy. In it survived, as fossils survive 
in ancient nooks and crannies of the earth, old traits 
of race, unchanged by time and environment. Liv- 
ing in a house lighted by electricity, the mental con- 
ception of it was to the TrumbuUs as the conception 
of candles; with telephones at hand, they uncon- 
sciously still conceived of messages delivered with 
the old saying, "Ride, ride," etc., and rela3^s of 
post-horses. They locked their doors, but still had 
latch-strings in mind. Johnn\''s father was a phy- 
sician, adopting modern methods of surgery and pre- 
scription, yet his mind harked back to cupping and 
calomel, and now and then he swerved aside from 

35 



THE COPY-CAT 

his path across the field of the present into the future 
and plunged headlong, as if for fresh air, into the 
traditional past, and often with brilliant results. 

Johnny's mother was a college graduate. She was 
the president of the woman's club. She read papers 
savoring of such feminine leaps ahead that they 
were like gymnastics, but she walked homeward 
with the gait of her great-grandmother, and inwardly 
regarded her husband as her lord and master. She 
minced genteelly, lifting her quite fashionable skirts 
high above very slender ankles, which were heredi- 
tary. Not a woman of her race had ever gone home 
on thick ankles, and they had all gone home. They 
had all been at home, even if abroad — at home in 
the truest sense. At the club, reading her inflam- 
matory paper, Cora Trumbull's real self remained 
at home intent upon her mending, her dusting, her 
house economics. It was something remarkably 
like her astral body which presided at the club. 

As for her unmarried sister Janet, who was older 
and had graduated from a young ladies' seminary 
instead of a college, whose early fancy had been 
guided into the lady-like ways of antimacassars and 
pincushions and wax flowers under glass shades, 
she was a straighter proposition. No astral pre- 
tensions had Janet. She stayed, body and soul to- 
gether, in the old ways, and did not even project 
her shadow out of them. There is seldom room 
enough for one's shadow in one's earliest way of 
life, but there was plenty for Janet's. There had 
been a Janet unmarried in every Trumbull family 
for generations. That in some subtle fashion ac- 

36 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

counted for her remaining single. There had also 
been an unmarried Jonathan Trumbull, and that 
accounted for Johnny's old bachelor uncle Jonathan. 
Jonathan was a retired clergyman. He had retired 
before he had preached long, because of doctrinal 
doubts, which were hereditary. He had a little, 
dark study in Johnny's father's house, which was 
the old Trumbull homestead, and he passed much 
of his time there, debating within himself that mat- 
ter of doctrines. 

Presently Johnny, assiduously kicking up dust, 
met his uncle Jonathan, who passed without the 
slightest notice. Johnny did not mind at all. He 
was used to it. Presently his own father appeared, 
driving along in his buggy the bay mare at a steady 
jog, with the next professional call quite clearly 
upon her equine mind. And Johnny's father did 
not see him. Johnny did not mind that, either. 
He expected nothing different. 

Then Johnny saw his mother approaching. She 
was coming from the club meeting. She held up her 
silk skirts high, as usual, and carried a nice little 
parcel of papers tied with ribbon. She also did not 
notice Johnny, who, however, out of sweet respect 
for his mother's nice silk dress, stopped kicking up 
dust. Mrs. Trumbull on the village street was really 
at home preparing a shortcake for supper. 

Johnny eyed his mother's faded but rather beau- 
tiful face under the rose-trimmed bonnet with ad- 
miration and entire absence of resentment. Then he 
walked on and kicked up the dust again. He loved 
to kick up the dust in summer, the fallen leaves in 

37 



THE COPY-CAT 

autumn, and the snow in winter. Johnny was not 
a typical Trumbull. None of them had ever cared 
for simple amusements hke that. Looking back for 
generations on his father's and mother's side (both 
had been Trumbulls, but very distantly related), 
none could be discovered who in the least resembled 
Johnny. No dim blue eye of retrospection and re- 
flection had Johnny; no tendency to tall slender- 
ness which would later bow beneath the greater 
weight of the soul. Johnny was small, but wiry of 
build, and looked able to bear any amount of men- 
tal development without a lasting bend of his physi- 
cal shoulders. Johnny had, at the early age of ten, 
whopped nearly every boy in school, but that was a 
secret of honor. It was well known in the school 
that, once the Trumbulls heard of it, Johnny could 
never whop again. "You fellows know," Johnny 
had declared once, standing over his prostrate and 
whimpering foe, "that I don't mind getting whopped 
at home, but they might send me away to another 
school, and then I could never whop any of you 
fellows." 

Johnny Trumbull kicking up the dust, himself 
dust-covered, his shoes, his little queerly fitting dun 
suit, his cropped head, all thickly powdered, loved 
it. He sniffed in that dust Hke a grateful incense. 
He did not stop dust-kicking when he saw his aunt 
Janet coming, for, as he considered, her old black 
gown was not worth the sacrifice. It was true that 
she might see him. She sometimes did, if she were 
not reading a book as she walked. It had always 
been a habit with the Janet Trumbulls to read im- 

38 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

proving books when they walked abroad. To-day 
Johnny saw, with a quick glance of those sharp, 
black e3es, so unlike the Trumbulls', that his aunt 
Janet was reading. He therefore expected her to 
pass him without recognition, and marched on kick- 
ing up the dust. But suddenly, as he grew nearer 
the spry little figure, he was aware of a pair of gray 
eyes, before which wa\ed protectingly a hand clad 
in a black silk glove with dangling finger-tips, be- 
cause it was too long, and it dawned swiftly upon 
him that Aunt Janet was trying to shield her face 
from the moving column of brown motes. He 
stopped kicking, but it was too late. Aunt Janet 
had him by the collar and was vigorously shaking 
him with nervous strength. 

"You are a very naughty little boy," declared 
Aunt Janet. "You should know better than to walk 
along the street raising so much dust. No well- 
brought-up child ever does such things. Who are 
your parents, little boy?" 

Johnny perceived that Aunt Janet did not recog- 
nize him, which was easily explained. She wore 
her reading-spectacles and not her far-seeing ones; 
besides, her reading spectacles were obscured by 
dust and her nephew's face was nearly obliterated. 
Also as she shoo.k him his face was not much m evi- 
dence. Johnny disliked, naturally, to tell his aunt 
Janet that her own sister and brother-in-law were 
the parents of such a wicked little boy. He there- 
fore kept quiet and submitted to the shaking, mak- 
ing himself as limp as a rag. This, however, exas- 
perated Aunt Janet, who found herself encumbered 

39 



THE COPY-CAT 

by a dead weight of a little boy to be shaken, and 
suddenly Johnny Trumbull, the fighting champion 
of the town, the cock of the walk of the school, 
found himself being ignominiously spanked. That 
was too much. Johnny's fighting blood was up. 
He lost all consideration for circumstances, he for- 
got that Aunt Janet was not a boy, that she was quite 
near being an old lady. She had overstepped the 
bounds of privilege of age and sex, and an alarming 
state of equality ensued. Quickly the tables were 
turned. The boy became far from limp. He stiff- 
ened, then bounded and rebounded like wire. He 
butted, he parried, he observed all his famous tac- 
tics of battle, and poor Aunt Janet sat down in the 
dust, black dress, bonnet, glasses (but the glasses 
were off and lost), little improving book, black silk 
gloves, and all; and Johnny, hopeless, awful, irrev- 
erent, sat upon his Aunt Janet's plunging knees, 
which seemed the most lively part of her. He kept 
his face twisted away from her, but it was not from 
cowardice. Johnny was afraid lest Aunt Janet 
should be too much overcome by the discovery of 
his identity. He felt that it was his duty to spare 
her that. So he sat still, triumphant but inwardly 
aghast. 

It was fast dawning upon him that his aunt was 
not a little boy. He was not afraid of any punish- 
ment which might be meted out to him, but he was 
simply horrified. He himself had violated all the 
honorable conditions of warfare. He felt a little 
dizzy and ill, and he felt worse when he ventured 
a hurried glance at Aunt Janet's face. She was very 

40 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

pale through the dust, and her e3-es were closed. 
Johnn}' thought then that he had killed her. 

He got up — the nervous knees were no longer 
plunging; then he heard a voice, a little-girl voice, 
always shrill, but now high pitched to a squeak with 
terror. It was the voice of Lil)- Jennings. She 
stood near and vet aloof, a lovelv Httle flower of a 
girl, all white-scalloped frills and ribbons, with a 
big white-frilled hat shading a pale little face and 
covering the top of a head decorated with wonder- 
ful }-ellow curls. She stood behind a big babj'-car- 
riage with a pink-lined muslin canopy and con- 
taining a nest of pink and white, but an empty nest. 
Lily's little brother's carriage had a spring broken, 
and she had been to borrow her aunt's babj'-carriage, 
so that nurse could wheel little brother up and down 
the veranda. Nurse had a headache, and the maids 
were bus}-, and Lily, who was a kind little soul and, 
moreover, imaginative, and who liked the idea of 
pushing an empty babv-carriage, had volunteered 
to go for it. All the wa}^ she had been dreaming of 
what was not in the carriage. She had come directly 
out of a dream of doll twins when she chanced upon 
the traged}- in the road. 

"What have you been doing now, Johnny Trum- 
bull?" said she. She was tremulous, white with 
horror, but she stood her ground. It was curious, 
but Johnn}- Trumbull, with all his braver}-, was 
alwavs cowed before Lil}-. Once she had turned and 
stared at him when he had emerged triumphant 
but with bleeding nose from a fight; then she had 
sniffed delicatel}- and gone her wa}-. It had only 

41 



THE COPY-CAT 

taken a second, but in that second the victor had 
met moral defeat. 

He looked now at her pale, really scared face, and 
his own was as pale. He stood and kicked the dust 
until the swirling column of it reached his head. 

"That's right," said Lily; "stand and kick up 
dust all over me. What have you been doing.?" 

Johnny was trembling so he could hardly stand. 
He stopped kicking dust. 

"Have you killed your aunt?" demanded Lily. 
It was monstrous, but she had a very dramatic im- 
agination, and there was a faint hint of enjoyment 
in her tragic voice. 

"Guess she's just choked by dust," volunteered 
Johnny, hoarsely. He kicked the dust again. 

"That's right," said Lily. "If she's choked to 
death by dust, stand there and choke her some more. 
You are a murderer, Johnny Trumbull, and my 
mamma will never allow me to speak to you again, 
and Madame will not allow you to come to school. 
And — I see your papa driving up the street, and there 
is the chief policeman's buggy just behind." Lily 
acquiesced entirely in the extraordinary coincidence 
of the father and the chief of police appearing upon 
the scene. The unlikely seemed to her the likely. 
"Now," said she, cheerfully, "you will be put in 
state prison and locked up, and then you will be put 
to death by a very strong telephone." 

Johnny's father was leaning out of his buggy, look- 
ing back at the chief of police in his, and the mare 
was jogging very slowly in a perfect reek of dust. 
Lily, who was, in spite of her terrific imagination, 

42 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

human and a girl, rose suddenlr to heights of pity 
and succor. "They shall never take you, Johnny 
Trumbull," said she. 'T will save you." 

Johnny by this time vras utterly forgetful of his 
high status as champion (behind her back) of 3,1a- 
dame's very select school for select children of a 
somewhat select village. He was forgetful of the 
fact that a champion never cries. He cried; he 
blubbered; tears rolled over his dusty cheeks, mak- 
ing furrows like plowshares of grief. He feared lest 
he might have killed his aunt Janet. Women, and 
not very young women, might presumably be un- 
able to survive such rough usage as very tough 
and at the same time very Hmber Httle bo\"s, and 
he loved his poor aunt Janet. He grieved because 
of his aunt, his parents, his uncle, and rather more 
particularly because of himself. He was quite sure 
that the policeman was coming for him. Logic had 
no place in his frenzied conclusions. He did not 
consider how the tragedy had taken place entirelj' 
out of sight of a house, that Lily Jennings was the 
only person who had any knowledge of it. He looked 
at the masterful, fair-haired httle girl like a baby. 
'■How?'" sniffed he. 

For answer, Lily pointed to the empty bab^-car- 
riage. '"Get right m," she ordered. 

Even in this dire extremit}- Johnny hesitated. 
"Can't." 

"Yes, vou can. It is extra large. Aunt Laura's 
baby was a twin when he first came; now he s just 
an ordinarv baby, but his carriage is big enough for 
two. There's plenty of room. Besides, }ou're a 

43 



THE COPY-CAT 

very small boy, very small of your age, even if you 
do knock all the other boys down and have mur- 
dered your aunt. Get in. In a minute they will 
see you." 

There was in reality no time to lose. Johnny 
did get in. In spite of the provisions for twins, 
there was none too much room. 

Lily covered him up with the fluffy pink-and-lace 
things, and scowled. "You hump up awfully," 
she muttered. Then she reached beneath him and 
snatched out the pillow on which he lay, the baby's 
little bed. She gave it a swift toss over the fringe 
of wayside bushes into a field. "Aunt Laura's nice 
embroidered pillow," said she. "Make yourself just 
as flat as you can, Johnny Trumbull." 

Johnny obeyed, but he was obliged to double him- 
self up like a jack-knife. However, there was no 
sign of him visible when the two buggies drew up. 
There stood a pale and frightened little girl, with 
a baby-carriage canopied with rose and lace and 
heaped up with rosy and lacy coverlets, presumably 
sheltering a sleeping infant. Lily was a very keen 
little girl. She had sense enough not to run. The 
two men, at the sight of Aunt Janet prostrate in the 
road, leaped out of their buggies. The doctor's 
horse stood still; the policeman's trotted away, to 
Lily's great relief. She could not imagine Johnny's 
own father haling him away to state prison and 
the stern Arm of Justice. She stood the fire of 
bewildered questions in the best and safest fashion. 
She wept bitterly, and her tears were not assumed. 
Poor little Lily was all of a sudden crushed under 

44 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

the weight of facts. There was Aunt Janet, she had 
no doubt, killed b}- her own nephew, and she was 
hiding the guilt3- murderer. She had visions of 
state prison for herself. She watched fearfullv while 
the two men bent over the prostrate woman, who 
vet}' soon began to sputter and gasp and tr}- to sit 

"What on earth is the matter, Janet."' inquired 
Dr. Trumbull, who was paler than his sister-in- 
law. In fact, she was unable to look vet}- pale on 
account of dust. 

"0^T!" sputtered Aunt Janet, coughing violently, 
"get me up out of this dust, John. Owl" 

"What was the matter.^" 

"Yes, what has happened, madam?" demanded 
the chief of police, sternl3^ 

"Nothing," replied Aunt Janet, to Lil^^'s and 
Johnny's amazement. "What do you think has 
happened.^ I fell down in all this nast}- dust. Ow!" 

"What did you eat for luncheon, Janet?" in- 
quired Dr. Trumbull, as he assisted his sister-in- 
law to her feet. 

"What I was a fool to eat," repHed Janet Trum- 
bull, promptl}-. "Cucumber salad and lemon jelly 
with whipped cream." 

"Enough to make anybody' have indigestion," 
said Dr. Trumbull. "You have had one of these 
attacks before, too, Janet. You remember the time 
you ate strawberry shortcake and ice-cream? ' 

Janet nodded meeklj-. Then she coughed again. 
"Ow, this dust!" gasped she. "For goodness' sake, 
John, get me home where I can get some water and 

45 



THE COPY-CAT 

take ofF these dusty clothes or I shall choke to 
death." 

"How does your stomach feel?" inquired Dr. 
Trumbull. 

"Stomach is all right now, but I am just choking 
to death with the dust." Janet turned sharply tow- 
ard the pohceman. "You have sense enough to 
keep still, I hope," said she. "I don't want the 
whole town ringing with my being such an idiot as 
to eat cucumbers and cream together and being 
found this way." Janet looked like an animated 
creation of dust as she faced the chief of police. 

"Yes, ma'am," he repUed, bowing and scraping 
one foot and raising more dust. 

He and Dr. Trumbull assisted Aunt Janet into 
the buggy, and they drove off. Then the chief of 
police discovered that his own horse had gone. 
"Did you see which way he went, sis?" he inquired 
of Lily, and she pointed down the road, and sobbed 
as she did so. 

The policeman said something bad under his 
breath, then advised Lily to run home to her ma, 
and started down the road. 

When he was out of sight, Lily drew back the 
pink-and-white things from Johnny's face. "Well, 
you didn't kill her this time," said she. 

"Why do you s'pose she didn't tell all about it?" 
said Johnny, gaping at her. 

"How do I know? I suppose she was ashamed 
to tell how she had been fighting, maybe." 

"No, that was not why," said Johnny in a deep 
voice. 

46 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

"Wh}- was it, then:" 

"She kntzc." 

Johnny began to climb out of the baby-carriage. 

"^^hat Tvill she do next, then:"' asked Lilv. 

"I don't know," Johnm- replied, gloomil}-. 

He was out of the carriage then, and Lih" was 
readjusting the pillows and things. "Get that nice 
embroidered pillow I threw over the bushes," she 
ordered, crossh". Johnn}- obej-ed. \A'hen she had 
finished putting the baby-carriage to rights she 
turned upon poor little Johnny Trumbull, and her 
face wore the expression of a queen of tragedy-. 
"Well," said Lilj" Jennings, 'T suppose I shall have 
to marrj" you when I am grown up, after all this." 

Johnny gasped. He thought Lilj- the most beau- 
tiful girl he knew, but to be confronted with murder 
and marriage within a few minutes was almost too 
much. He flushed a burning red. He laughed fool- 
ishly. He said nothing. 

"It will be ver\" hard on me," stated Lily, "to 
marry a boy who tried to murder his nice aunt." 

Johnny revived a bit under this feminine disdain. 
"I didn't try to murder her," he said in a weak 
voice. 

"You might have, throwing her down in all that 
awful dust, a nice, clean lady. Ladies are not like 
boys. It might kill them very quickl}- to be knocked 
down on a dusty road." 

"I didn't mean to kill her." 

"\ ou might have." 

"Well, I didn't, and— she— " 

"WTiat:" 

47 



THE COPY-CAT 

"She spanked me." 

"Pooh! That doesn't amount to anything," 
sniffed Lily. 

"It does if you are a boy." 

"I don't see why." 

"Well, I can't help it if you don't. It does." 

"Why shouldn't a boy be spanked when he's 
naughty, just as well as a girl, I would like to know?" 

"Because he's a boy." 

Lily looked at Johnny Trumbull. The great fact 
did remain. He had been spanked, he had thrown 
his own aunt down in the dust. He had taken ad- 
vantage of her little-girl protection, but he was a 
boy. Lily did not understand his why at all, but 
she bowed before it. However, that she would not 
admit. She made a rapid change of base. "What," 
said she, "are you going to do next.?" 

Johnny stared at her. It was a puzzle. 

"If," said Lily, distinctly, "you are afraid to go 
home, if you think your aunt will tell, I will let you 
get into Aunt Laura's baby-carriage again, and I 
will wheel you a little way." 

Johnny would have liked at that moment to knock 
Lily down, as he had his aunt Janet. Lily looked 
at him shrewdly. "Oh yes," said she, "you can 
knock me down in the dust there if you want to, 
and spoil my nice cleari dress. You will be a boy, 
just the same." 

"I will never marry you, anyway," declared 
Johnny. 

"Aren't you afraid I'll tell on you and get you 
another spanking if you don't?" 

48 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

"Tell if you want to. I'd enough sight rather be 
spanked than marry you." 

A gleam of respect came into the little girl's 
wisely regarding blue eyes. She, with the swiftness 
of her sex, recognized in forlorn httle Johnny the 
making of a man. "Oh, well," said she, loftily, 
"I never was a telltale, and, anywaj^, we are not 
grown up, and there will be my trousseau to get, 
and a lot of other things to do first. I shall go to 
Europe before I am married, too, and I might meet 
a boy much nicer than you on the steamer." 

"Meet him if you want to." 

Lily looked at Johnny Trumbull with more than 
respect — with admiration — but she kept guard over 
her little tongue. "Well, you can leave that for 
the future," said she with a grown-up air. 

"I ain't going to leave it. It's settled for good 
and all now," growled Johnny. 

To his immense surprise, Lily curved her white 
embroidered sleeve over her face and began to weep. 

"What's the matter now.?" asked Johnny, sulkily, 
after a minute. 

"I think you are a real horrid boy," sobbed Lily. 

Lily looked like nothing but a very frilly, sweet, 
white flower. Johnny could not see her face. There 
was nothing to be seen except that delicate fluff of 
white, supported on dainty white-socked, white- 
slippered limbs. 

"Say," said Johnny. 

"You are real cruel, when I — I saved your — li-fe," 
wailed Lily. 

"Say," said Johnny, "maybe if I don't see any 
4 49 



THE COPY-CAT 

other girl I like better I will marry you when I am 
grown up, but I won't if you don't stop that howl- 

mg. 

Lily stopped immediately. She peeped at him, 
a blue peep from under the flopping, embroidered 
brim of her hat. "Are you in earnest?" She smiled 
faintly. Her blue eyes, wet with tears, were lovely; 
so was her hesitating smile. 

"Yes, if you don't act silly," said Johnny. "Now 
you had better run home, or your mother will won- 
der where that baby-carriage is." 

Lily walked away, smiling over her shoulder, the 
smile of the happily subjugated. "I won't tell any- 
body, Johnny," she called back in her flute-like 
voice. 

"Don't care if you do," returned Johnny, looking 
at her with chin in the air and shoulders square, 
and Lily wondered at his bravery. 

But Johnny was not so brave and he did care. He 
knew that his best course was an immediate return 
home, but he did not know what he might have to 
face. He could not in the least understand why his 
aunt Janet had not told at once. He was sure that 
she knew. Then he thought of a possible reason for 
her silence; she might have feared his arrest at the 
hands of the chief of police. Johnny quailed. He 
knew his aunt Janet to be rather a brave sort of 
woman. If she had fears, she must have had reason 
for them. He might even now be arrested. Suppose 
Lily did tell. He had a theory that girls usually 
told. He began to speculate concerning the horrors 
of prison. Of course he would not be executed, 

SO 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

since his aunt was obviously very far from being 
killed, but he might be imprisoned for a long term. 

Johnny went home. He did not kick the dust 
any more. He walked very steadily and staidly. 
When he came in sight of the old Colonial mansion, 
with its massive veranda pillars, he felt chilly. How- 
ever, he went on. He passed around to the south 
door and entered and smelled shortcake. It would 
have smelled delicious had he not had so much on 
his mind. He looked through the hall, and had a 
glimpse of his uncle Jonathan in the study, writing. 
At the right of the door was his father's office. The 
door of that was open, and Johnny saw his father 
pouring things from bottles. He did not look at 
Johnny. His mother crossed the hall. She had 
on a long white apron, which she wore when making 
her famous cream shortcakes. She saw Johnny, 
but merely observed, "Go and wash vour face and 
hands, Johnny; it is nearly supper-time." 

Johnny went up-stairs. At the upper landing he 
found his aunt Janet waiting for him. "Come 
here," she whispered, and Johnny followed her, 
trembling, into her own room. It was a large room, 
rather crowded with heavy, old-fashioned furni- 
ture. Aunt Janet had freed herself from dust and 
was arrayed in a purple silk gown. Her hair was 
looped loosely on either side of her long face. She 
was a handsome woman, after a certain type. 

"Stand here, Johnny," said she. She had closed 
the door, and Johnny was stationed before her. 
She did not seem in the least injured nor the worse 
for her experience. On the contrary, there was a 

SI 



THE COPY-CAT 

bright-red flush on her cheeks, and her eyes shone 
as Johnny had never seen them. She looked eagerly 
at Johnny. 

"Why did you do that?" she said, but there was 
no anger in her voice. 

"I forgot," began Johnny. 

"Forgot what?" Her voice was strained with 
eagerness. 

"That you were not another boy," said Johnny. 

"Tell me," said Aunt Janet. "No, you need not 
tell me, because if you did it might be my duty to 
inform your parents. I know there is no need of 
your telling. You must be in the habit of fighting 
with the other boys." 

"Except the little ones," admitted Johnny. 

To Johnny's wild astonishment. Aunt Janet seized 
him by the shoulders and looked him in the eyes 
with a look of adoration and immense approval. 
"Thank goodness," said she, "at last there is going 
to be a fighter in the Trumbull family. Your uncle 
would never fight, and your father would not. Your 
grandfather would. Your uncle and your father are 
good men, though; you must try to be like them, 
Johnny." 

"Yes, ma'am," replied Johnny, bewildered. 

"I think they would be called better men than 
your grandfather and my father," said Aunt Janet. 
Yes, ma am. 

"I think it is time for you to have your grand- 
father's watch," said Aunt Janet. "I think you are 
man enough to take care of it." Aunt Janet had 
all the time been holding a black leather case. Now 

52 



THE COCK OF THE WALK 

she opened it, and Johnnv saw the great gold watch 
which he had seen manj- times before and had always 
understood was to be his some da}-, when he was a 
man. "Here," said Aunt Janet. "Take good care 
of it. You must try to be as good as your uncle and 
father, but you must remember one thing — j'ou 
will wear a watch which belonged to a man who 
never allowed other men to crowd him out of the 
wa}' he elected to go." 

"Yes, ma'am," said Johnm'. He took the 
watch. 

"What do 3-ou sa}?" inquired his aunt, sharply. 

"Thank 3'ou."' 

"That's right. I thought you had forgotten your 
manners. Your grandfather never did." 

"I am sorr^', Aunt Janet," muttered Johnn}', 
"that I—" 

"You need never say an)-thing about that," his 
aunt returned, quicklj'". "I did not see who you 
were at first. You are too old to be spanked by a 
woman, but you ought to be whipped bv a man, 
and I wish )-our grandfather were alive to do it." 

"Yes, ma'am," said Johnn}\ He looked at her 
braveh'. "He could if he wanted to," said he. 

Aunt Janet smiled at him proudl}'. "Of course," 
said she, "a boy like you never gets the worst of it 
fighting with other boys." 

"No, ma'am," said Johnny. 

Aunt Janet smiled again. "Now run and wash 
vour face and hands," said she; "you must not keep 
supper waiting. Your mother has a paper to write 
for her club, and I have promised to help her." 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Yes, ma'am," said Johnny. He walked out, 
carrying the great gold timepiece, bewildered, em- 
barrassed, modest beneath his honors, but little 
cock of the walk, whether he would or no, for reasons 
entirely and forever beyond his ken. 



JOHNNY IN THE -WOODS 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

TOHXNY TRUMBULL, he who had demon- 
J strated his claim to be Cock of the Walk by a 
most impious hand-to-hand fight %Tith his own aunt, 
Miss Janet Trumbull, m which he had been deci- 
sively victorious, and won his spurs, consisting of his 
late grandfather's immense, solemnh' ticking watch, 
was to take a new path of action. Johnny suddenly 
developed the prominent Trumbull trait, but in his 
case it was inverted. Johnny, as became a boy of 
his race, took an excursion into the past, but instead 
of applving the present to the past, as was the 
tendency of the other Trumbulls, he forcibly applied 
the past to the present. He fairly plastered the 
past over the exigencies of his day and generation 
like a penetrating poultice of mustard, and the 
results were peculiar. 

Johnnv, being bidden of a rainy day during the 
midsummer vacation to remain in the house, to 
keep quiet, read a book, and be a good boy, obeyed, 
but his obedience was of a doubtful measure of 
wisdom. 

Tohnnv got a book out of his uncle Jonathan Trum- 
bulFs dark little library while Jonathan was walking 
sedately- to the post-oflEce, holding his dripping 



THE COPY-CAT 

umbrella at a wonderful slant of exactness, without 
regard to the wind, thereby getting the soft drive 
of the rain full in his face, which became, as it 
were, bedewed with tears, entirely outside any 
cause of his own emotions. 

Johnny probably got the only book of an anti- 
orthodox trend in his uncle's library. He found 
tucked away in a snug corner an ancient collection 
of Border Ballads, and he read therein of many 
unmoral romances and pretty fancies, which, since 
he was a small boy, held little meaning for him, or 
charm, beyond a delight in the swing of the rhythm, 
for Johnny had a feeling for music. It was when he 
read of Robin Hood, the bold Robin Hood, with his 
dubious ethics but his certain and unquenchable 
interest, that Johnny Trumbull became intent. He 
had the volume in his own room, being somewhat 
doubtful as to whether it might be of the sort 
included in the good-boy role. He sat beside a rain- 
washed window, which commanded a view of the 
wide field between the Trumbull mansion and Jim 
Simmons's house, and he read about Robin Hood 
and his Greenwood adventures, his forcible setting 
the wrong right; and for the first time his imagina- 
tion awoke, and his ambition. Johnny Trumbull, 
hitherto hero of nothing except little material fist- 
fights, wished now to become a hero of true romance. 

In fact, Johnny considered seriously the possi- 
bility of reincarnating, in his own person, Robin 
Hood. He eyed the wide green field dreamily 
through his rain-blurred window. It was a pretty 
field, waving with feathery grasses and starred with 

58 



J O H N N Y I N - T H E - W O O D S 

daisies and buttercups, and it was ver\- fortunate 
that it happened to be so wide. Jim Simmons's 
house was not a desirable feature of the landscape, 
and looked much better several acres awav It was 
a neglected, squalid structure, and considered a dis- 
grace to the whole village. Jim was also a disgrace, 
and an unsolved problem. He owned that house, 
and somehow contrived to pay the taxes thereon. 
He also lived and throve in bodih' health in spite of 
evil ways, and his children were man}'. There 
seemed no way to dispose finally of Jim Simmons 
and his house except bv murder and arson, and the 
village was a peaceful one, and such measures were 
entirelv too strenuous. 

Presently Johnny, staring dreamily out of his 
window, saw approaching a rust3'-black umbrella 
held at precisel}' the wrong angle in respect of the 
storm, but held with the unvan^ing stiffness with 
which a soldier might hold a bayonet, and knew it 
for his uncle Jonathan's umbrella. Soon he beheld 
also his uncle's serious, rain-drenched face and his 
long ambling bod\' and legs. Jonathan was coming 
home from the post-office, whither he repaired ever\ 
morning. He never got a letter, never an}'thing 
except religious newspapers, but the visit to the 
post-office was part of his daih' routine. Rain or 
shine, Jonathan Trumbull went for the morning 
mail, and gained thereby a queer negative enjoy- 
ment of a perfecth" useless dutA' performed. Johnny 
watched his uncle draw near to the house, and cruellv 
reflected how unlike Robin Hood he must be. He 
even wondered if his uncle could possibly have read 

59 



& 



THE COPY-CAT 

Robin Hood and still show absolutely no result in his 
own personal appearance. He knew that he, Johnny, 
could not walk to the post-office and back, even with 
the drawback of a dripping old umbrella instead of 
a bow and arrow, without looking a bit like Robin 
Hood, especially when fresh from reading about him. 
Then suddenly something distracted his thoughts 
from Uncle Jonathan. The long, feathery grass in 
the field moved with a motion distinct from that 
caused by the wind and rain. Johnny saw a tiger- 
striped back emerge, covering long leaps of terror. 
Johnny knew the creature for a cat afraid of Uncle 
Jonathan. Then he saw the grass move behind the 
first leaping, striped back, and he knew there were 
more cats afraid of Uncle Jonathan. There were 
even motions caused by unseen things, and he 
reasoned, "Kittens afraid of Uncle Jonathan." 
Then Johnny reflected with a great glow of indigna- 
tion that the Simmonses kept an outrageous num- 
ber of half-starved cats and kittens, besides a quota 
of children popularly supposed to be none too well 
nourished, let alone properly clothed. Then it was 
that Johnny Trumbull's active, firm imagination 
slapped the past of old romance like a most thorough 
mustard poultice over the present. There could be 
no Lincoln Green, no following of brave outlaws 
(that is, in the strictest sense), no bows and arrows, 
no sojourning under greenwood trees and the rest, 
but something he could, and would, do and be. 
That rainy day when Johnny Trumbull was a good 
boy, and stayed in the house, and read a book, 
marked an epoch. 

60 



JOHNNY-IN -THE- WOODS 

That night when Johnny went into his aunt 
Janet's room she looked curiousl\' at his face, which 
seemed a Httle strange to her. Johnn}", since he had 
come into possession of his grandfather's watch, 
went even' night, on his wa\" to bed, to his aunt's 
room for the purpose of winding up that ancient 
timepiece. Janet having a firm impression that it 
might not be done properly unless under her super- 
vision. Johnm' stood before his aunt and wound up 
the watch vvith its ponderous key, and she watched 
him. 

"What have you been doing all da.y, John."' said 
she. 

"Stayed in tlie house and — read." 

''^^^lat did you read, John."' 

"A book." 

"Do you mean to be impertinent, John?" 

"Xo. ma'am," repKed Johnny, and with perfect 
truth. He had not tlie slightest idea of the title of 
the book. 

"What was the book: " 

"A poetry book." 

"Where did you find it.'" 

"In Uncle Jonathan's library." 

"Poetry in Uncle Jonathan's library:'' said Janet, 
in a mvstified way. She had a general impression 
of Jonathan's Hbrar\' as of century-old preserves, 
altogether dried up and quite indistinguishable one 
from the other except by labels. Poetry she could 
not imagine as being there at all. Finally she 
thought of the early Victorians, and Spenser and 
Chaucer. The hbrari' might include them, but she 

6i 



THE COPY-CAT 

had an idea that Spenser and Chaucer were not fit 
reading for a little boy. However, as she remem- 
bered Spenser and Chaucer, she doubted if Johnny- 
could understand much of them. Probably he had 
gotten hold of an early Victorian, and she looked 
rather contemptuous. 

"I don't think much of a boy like you reading 
poetry," said Janet. "Couldn't you find anything 
else to read ?" 

"No, ma'am." That also was truth. Johnny, 
before exploring his uncle's theological library, had 
peered at his father's old medical books and his 
mother's bookcases, which contained quite terrify- 
ing uniform editions of standard things written by 
women. 

"I don't suppose there are many books written for 
boys," said Aunt Janet, reflectively. 

"No, ma'am," said Johnny. He finished winding 
the watch, and gave, as was the custom, the key to 
Aunt Janet, lest he lose it. 

"I will see if I cannot find some books of travels 
for you, John," said Janet. "I think travels would 
be good reading for a boy. Good night, John." 

"Good night. Aunt Janet," replied Johnny. His 
aunt never kissed him good night, which was one 
reason why he liked her. 

On his way to bed he had to pass his mother's room, 
whose door stood open. She was busy writing at her 
desk. She glanced at Johnny. 

"Are you going to bed.?" said she. 

"Yes, ma'am." 

Johnny entered the room and let his mother kiss his 
62 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

forehead, parting his curly hair to do so. He loved 
his mother, but did not care at all to have her kiss 
him. He did not object, because he thought she 
liked to do it, and she was a woman, and it was a 
very little thing in which he could oblige her. 

"Were you a good boy, and did you find a good 
book to read?" asked she. 
Yes, ma am. 

"What was the book.?" Cora Trumbull inquired, 
absently, writing as she spoke. 

"Poetry." 

Cora laughed. "Poetry is odd for a boy," said she. 
"You should have read a book of travels or history. 
Good night, Johnny." 

"Good night, mother." 

Then Johnny met his father, smelling strongly of 
medicines, coming up from his study. But his father 
did not see him. And Johnny went to bed, having 
imbibed from that old tale of Robin Hood more of 
history and more knowledge of excursions into realms 
of old romance than his elders had ever known during 
much longer lives than his. 

Johnny confided in nobody at first. His feeling 
nearly led him astray in the matter of Lily Jennings; 
he thought of her, for one sentimental minute, as 
Robin Hood's Maid Marion. Then he dismissed 
the idea peremptorily. Lily Jennings would simply 
laugh. He knew her. Moreover, she was a girl, 
and not to be trusted. Johnny felt the need of 
another boy who would be a kindred spirit; he 
wished for more than one boy. He wished for a 
following of heroic and lawless souls, even as Robin 

63 



THE COPY-CAT 

Hood's. But he could think of nobody, after con- 
siderable study, except one boy, younger than him- 
self. He was a beautiful little boy, whose mother 
had never allowed him to have his golden curls 
cut, although he had been in trousers for quite a 
while. However, the trousers were foolish, being 
knickerbockers, and accompanied by low socks, 
which revealed pretty, dimpled, babyish legs. The 
boy's name was Arnold Carruth, and that was against 
him, as being long, and his mother firm about al- 
lowing no nickname. Nicknames in any case were 
not allowed in the very exclusive private school 
which Johnny attended. 

Arnold Carruth, in spite of his being such a beau- 
tiful little boy, would have had no standing at all 
in the school as far as popularity was concerned 
had it not been for a strain of mischief which tri- 
umphed over curls, socks, and pink cheeks and a 
much-kissed rosebud of a mouth. Arnold Carruth, 
as one of the teachers permitted herself to state 
when relaxed in the bosom of her own family, was 
"as choke-full of mischief as a pod of peas. And the 
worst of it all is," quoth the teacher. Miss Agnes 
Rector, who was a pretty young girl, with a hidden 
sympathy for mischief herself — "the worst of it is, 
that child looks so like a cherub on a rosy cloud that 
even if he should be caught nobody would believe 
it. They would be much more hkely to accuse poor 
little Andrew Jackson Green, because he has a snub 
nose and is a bit cross-eyed, and I never knew that 
poor child to do anything except obey rules and learn 
his lessons. He is almost too good. And another 

64 



JOHNNY IN-THE-WOODS 

worst of it is, nobody can help loving that little imp 
of a Carruth boy, mischief and all. I believe the 
scamp knows it and takes advantage of it." 

It is quite possible that Arnold Carruth did 
profit unworthily by his beauty and engagingness, 
albeit without calculation. He was so young, it 
was monstrous to believe him capable of calculation, 
of deliberate trading upon his assets of birth and 
beauty and fascination. However, Johnny Trum- 
bull, who was wide awake and a year older, was alive 
to the situation. He told Arnold Carruth, and 
Arnold Carruth only, about Robin Hood and his 
great scheme. 

"You can help," said this wise Johnny; "you can 
be in it, because nobody thinks you can be in any- 
thing, on account of your wearing curls." 

Arnold Carruth flushed and gave an angry tug 
at one golden curl which the wind blew over a 
shoulder. The two boys were in a secluded corner 
of Madame's lawn, behind a clump of Japanese 
cedars, during an intermission. 

"I can't help it because I wear curls," declared 
Arnold with angry shame. 

"Who said you could? No need of getting mad." 

"Mamma and Aunt Flora and grandmamma 
won't let me have these old curls cut off"," said 
Arnold. "You needn't think I want to have curls 
like a girl, Johnny Trumbull." 

"Who said you did? And I know you don't like 
to wear those short stockings, either." 

"Like to!" Arnold gave a spiteful kick, first of 
one half-bared, dimpled leg, then of the other. 

5 6s 



THE COPY-CAT 

"First thing you know I'll steal mamma's or Aunt 
Flora's stockings and throw these in the furnace — 
I will. Do you s'pose a feller wants to wear these 
baby things ? I guess not. Women are awful queer, 
Johnny Trumbull. My mamma and my aunt Flora 
are awful nice, but they are queer about some 
things." 

"Most women are queer," agreed Johnny, "but 
my aunt Janet isn't as queer as some. Rather guess 
if she saw me with curls like a little girl she'd cut 
'em off herself." 

"Wish she was my aunt," said Arnold Carruth 
with a sigh. "A feller needs a woman like that till 
he's grown up. Do you s'pose she'd cut off my curls 
if I was to go to your house, Johnny?" 

"I'm afraid she wouldn't think it was right unless 
your mother said she might. She has to be real 
careful about doing right, because my uncle Jonathan 
used to preach, you know." 

Arnold Carruth grinned savagely, as if he endured 
pain. "Well, I s'pose I'll have to stand the curls and 
little baby stockings awhile longer," said he. "What 
was it you were going to tell me, Johnny ?" 

"I am going to tell you because I know you aren't 
too good, if you do wear curls and little stockings." 

"No, I ain't too good," declared Arnold Carruth, 
proudly; "I ain't — honest, Johnny." 

"That's why I'm going to tell you. But if you 
tell any of the other boys — or girls — " 

"Tell girls!" sniffed Arnold. 

"If you tell anybody, I'll hck you." 

"Guess I ain't afraid." 
66 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

"Guess you'd be afraid to go home after you'd 
been licked." 

"Guess my mamma would give it to you." 

"Run home and tell mamma you'd been whopped, 
would you, then.?" 

Little Arnold, beautiful baby boy, straightened 
himself ^^-ith a quick remembrance that he was 
bom a man. "You know I wouldn't tell, Johnny 
Trumbull." 

"Guess you wouldn't. Well, here it is — " Johnny 
spoke in emphatic whispers, Arnold's curl}' head close 
to his mouth: "There are a good many things in 
this town have got to be set right," said Johnny. 

Little Arnold stared at him. Then fire shone in 
his lovelr blue eyes under the golden shadow of his 
curls, a fire which had shone in the eyes of some 
ancestors of his, for there was good fighting blood 
in the Carruth family, as well as in the Trumbull, 
although this small descendant did go about curled 
and kissed and barelegged. 

"How'll we begin.?" said Arnold, in a strenuous 
whisper. 

"We've got to begin right away with Jim Sim- 
mons's cats and kittens." 

"With Jim Simmons's cats and kittens.?" repeated 
Arnold. 

"That was what I said, exactly. We've got to 
begin right there. It is an awful little beginning, 
but I can't think of anything else. If you can, I'm 
willing to listen." 

"I guess I can't," admitted Arnold, helplessly. 

"Of course we can't go around taking away money 

67 



THE COPY-CAT 

from rich people and giving it to poor folks. One 
reason is, most of the poor folks in this town are 
lazy, and don't get money because they don't want 
to work for it. And when they are not lazy, they 
drink. If we gave rich people's money to poor 
folks like that, we shouldn't do a mite of good. 
The rich folks would be poor, and the poor folks 
wouldn't stay rich; they would be lazier, and get 
more drink. I don't see any sense in doing things 
like that in this town. There are a few poor folks 
I have been thinking we might take some money 
for and do good, but not many." 

"Who.?" inquired Arnold Carruth, in awed tones. 

"Well, there is poor old Mrs. Sam Little. She's 
awful poor. Folks help her, I know, but she can't 
be real pleased being helped. She'd rather have the 
money herself. I have been wondering if we couldn't 
get some of your father's money away and give it 
to her, for one." 

"Get away papa's money!" 

"You don't mean to tell me you are as stingy as 
that, Arnold Carruth ?" 

"I guess papa wouldn't like it." 

"Of course he wouldn't. But that is not the point. 
It is not what your father would like; it is what that 
poor old lady would like." 

It was too much for Arnold. He gaped at 
Johnny. 

"If you are going to be mean and stingy, we may 
as well stop before we begin," said Johnny. 

Then Arnold Carruth recovered himself. "Old 
Mr. Webster Payne is awful poor," said he. "We 

68 



JOHNNY-IN-THE- WOODS 

might take some of your father's money and give 
it to him." 

Johnn}' snorted, fairly snorted. "If," said he, 
"you think my father keeps his money where we 
can get it, you are mistaken, Arnold Carruth. My 
father's money is all in papers that are not worth 
much now and that he has to keep in the bank 
till they are." 

Arnold smiled hopefulh'. "Guess that's the way 
my papa keeps his monej'." 

"It's the way most rich people are mean enough 
to," said Johnny, severeh'. "I don't care if it's 
your father or mine, it's mean. And that's wh}- 
we've got to begin with Jim Simmons's cats and 
kittens." 

"Are }"ou going to give old Mrs. Sam Little cats?" 
inquired Arnold. 

Johnny sniffed. "Don't be silly," said he. 
"Though I do think a nice cat with a few kittens 
might cheer her up a little, and we could steal enough 
milk, bv getting up early and tagging after the milk- 
man, to feed them. But I wasn't thinking of giving 
her or old Mr. Pa3'ne cats and kittens. I wasn't 
thinking of folks; I was thinking of all those poor 
cats and kittens that Mr. Jim Simmons has and 
doesn't half feed, and that have to go hunting 
around folks' back doors in the rain, when cats hate 
water, too, and pick things up that must be bad 
for their stomachs, when they ought to have their 
milk regularh' in nice, clean saucers. No, Arnold 
Carruth, what we have got to do is to steal Mr. 
Jim Simmons's cats and get them in nice homes 

69 



THE COPY-CAT 

where they can earn their living catching mice and 
be well cared for." 

"Steal cats?" said Arnold. 

"Yes, steal cats, in order to do right," said Johnny 
Trumbull, and his expression was heroic, even 
exalted. 

It was then that a sweet treble, faltering yet 
exultant, rang in their ears. 

"If," said the treble voice, "you are going to 
steal dear little kitty cats and get nice homes for 
them, I'm going to help." 

The voice belonged to Lily Jennings, who had 
stood on the other side of the Japanese cedars and 
heard every word. 

Both boys started in righteous wrath, but Arnold 
Carruth was the angrier of the two. "Mean little 
cat yourself, listening," said he. His curls seemed 
to rise like a crest of rage. 

Johnny, remembering some things, was not so 
outspoken. "You hadn't any right to listen, Lily 
Jennings," he said, with masculine severity. 

"I didn't start to listen," said Lily. "I was look- 
ing for cones on these trees. Miss Parmalee wanted 
us to bring some object of nature into the class, and 
I wondered whether I could find a queer Japanese 
cone on one of these trees, and then I heard you 
boys talking, and I couldn't help listening. You 
spoke very loud, and I couldn't give up looking for 
that cone. I couldn't find any, and I heard all 
about the Simmonses' cats, and I know lots of other 
cats that haven't got good homes, and — I am going 
to be in it." 

70 



JOHNNYIN-THE- WOODS 

"You ain'l," declared Arnold Carruth. 

"We can't have girls in it," said Johnny the mind- 
ful, more politelj'. 

"You've got to have me. You had better have 
me, Johnny Trumbull," she added A\~ith meaning. 

Johnny flinched. It was a species of blackmail, 
but what could he do? Suppose Lih' told how she 
had hidden him — him, Johnny Trumbull, the cham- 
pion of the school — in that empt}- baby-carriage! 
He would have more to contend against than Arnold 
Carruth with socks and curls. He did not think Lily 
would tell. Somehow Lily, although a little, be- 
frilled girl, gave an impression of having a knowledge 
of a square deal almost as much as a boy would; 
but what bo}' could tell with a certainty what such 
an uncertain creature as a girl might or might not 
do? Moreover, Johnny had a weakness, a hidden, 
Spartanly hidden, weakness for Lilw He rather 
wished to have her act as partner in his great enter- 
prise. He therefore gruffly assented. 

"All right," he said, "you can be in it. But just 
you look out. You'll see what happens if )^ou tell." 

"She can't be in it; she's nothing but a girl," 
said Arnold Carruth, fiercely. 

Lil}'^ Jennings lifted her chin and survej^ed him 
with queenly scorn. "And what are you?" said she. 
"A little boy with curls and baby socks." 

Arnold colored with shame and fury, and subsided. 
"Mind you don't tell," he said, taking Johnn^-'s cue. 

"I sha'n't tell," replied Lil)-, -^-ith majest}-. "But 
you'll tell yourselves if you talk one side of trees 
without looking on the other." 

71 



THE COPY-CAT 

There was then only a few moments before 
Madame's musical Japanese gong which announced 
the close of intermission should sound, but three 
determined souls in conspiracy can accomplish much 
in a few moments. The first move was planned in 
detail before that gong sounded, and the two boys 
raced to the house, and Lily followed, carrying a toad- 
stool, which she had hurriedly caught up from the 
lawn for her object of nature to be taken into class. 

It was a poisonous toadstool, and Lily was quite 
a heroine in the class. That fact doubtless gave her 
a more dauntless air when, after school, the two 
boys caught up with her walking gracefully down 
the road, flirting her skirts and now and then giving 
her head a toss, which made her fluff of hair fly into 
a golden foam under her daisy-trimmed straw hat. 

"To-night," Johnny whispered, as he sped past. 

"At half past nine, between your house and the 
Simmonses'," replied Lily, without even looking at 
him. She was a past-mistress of dissimulation. 

Lily's mother had guests at dinner that night, 
and the guests remarked sometimes, within the little 
girl's hearing, what a darling she was. 

"She never gives me a second's anxiety," Lily's 
mother whispered to a lady beside her. "You can- 
not imagine what a perfectly good, dependable child 
she is." 

"Now my Christina is a good child in the grain," 
said the lady, "but she is full of mischief. I never 
can tell what Christina will do next." 

"/ can always tell," said Lily's mother, in a voice 
of maternal triumph. 

72 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

"Now only the other night, when I thought 
Christina was in bed, that absurd child got up and 
dressed and ran over to see her aunt Bella. Tom 
came home with her, and of course there was nothing 
very bad about it. Christina was very bright; she 
said, 'Mother, you never told me I must not get up 
and go to see Aunt Bella,' which was, of course, 
true. I could not gainsay that." 

"I cannot," said Lily's mother, "imagine my 
Lily's doing such a thing." 

If Lily had heard that last speech of her mother's, 
whom she dearly loved, she might have wavered. 
That pathetic trust in herself might have caused her 
to justify it. But she had finished her dinner and 
had been excused, and was undressing for bed, with 
the firm determination to rise betimes and dress 
and join Johnny Trumbull and Arnold Carruth. 
Johnny had the easiest time of them all. He simply 
' had to bid his aunt Janet good night and have the 
watch wound, and take a fleeting glimpse of his 
mother at her desk and his father in his ofiice, and 
go whistling to his room, and sit in the summer 
darkness and wait until the time came. 

Arnold Carruth had the hardest struggle. His 
mother had an old school friend visiting her, and 
Arnold, very much dressed up, with his curls falling 
in a shining fleece upon a real lace collar, had to be 
shown off and show off. He had to play one little' 
piece which he had learned upon the piano. He had 
to recite a little poem. He had to be asked how old 
he was, and if he liked to go to school, and how 
many teachers he had, and if he loved them, and 

73 



THE COPY-CAT 

if he loved his little mates, and which of them he 
loved best; and he had to be asked if he loved his 
aunt Dorothy, who was the school friend and not his 
aunt at all, and would he not like to come and live 
with her, because she had not any dear little boy; 
and he was obliged to submit to having his curls 
twisted around feminine fingers, and to being kissed 
and hugged, and a whole chapter of ordeals, before 
he was finally in bed, with his mother's kiss moist 
upon his lips, and free to assert himself. 

That night Arnold Carruth realized himself as 
having an actual horror of his helpless state of pam- 
pered childhood. The man stirred in the soul of the 
boy, and it was a little rebel with sulky pout of lips 
and frown of childish brows who stole out of bed, 
got into some queer clothes, and crept down the 
back stairs. He heard his aunt Dorothy, who was 
not his aunt, singing an Italian song in the parlor, 
he heard the clink of silver and china from the 
butler's pantry, where the maids were washing the 
dinner dishes. He smelt his father's cigar, and he 
gave a little leap of joy on the grass of the lawn. 
At last he was out at night alone, and — he wore long 
stockings! That noon he had secreted a pair of 
his mother's toward that end. When he came home 
to luncheon he pulled them out of the darning-bag, 
which he had spied through a closet door that had 
been left ajar. One of the stockings was green silk, 
and the other was black, and both had holes in 
them, but all that mattered was the length. Arnold 
wore also his father's riding-breeches, which came 
over his shoes and which were enormously large, 

74 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

and one of his father's silk shirts. He had resolved 
to dress consistently for such a great occasion. His 
clothes hampered him, but he felt happy as he sped 
clumsily down the road. 

However, both Johnny Trumbull and Lily Jen- 
nings, who were waiting for him at the rendezvous, 
were startled by his appearance. Both began to 
run, Johnny pulling Lily after him by the hand, 
but Arnold's cautious hallo arrested them. Johnny 
and Lily returned slowly, peering through the dark- 
ness. 

"It's me," said Arnold, with gay disregard of 
grammar. 

"You looked," said Lily, "like a real fat old man. 
What have you got on, Arnold Carruth?" 

Arnold slouched before his companions, ridiculous 
but triumphant. He hitched up a leg of the riding- 
breeches and displayed a long, green silk stocking. 
Both Johnny and Lily doubled up with laughter. 

"What you laughing at?" inquired Arnold, crossly. 

"Oh, nothing at all," said Lily. "Only you do 
look like a scarecrow broken loose. Doesn't he, 
Johnny?" 

"I am going home," stated Arnold with dignity. 
He turned, but Johnny caught him in his little iron 

grip- 

"Oh, shucks, Arnold Carruth!" said he. "Don't 

be a baby. Come on." And Arnold Carruth with 

difficulty came on. 

People in the village, as a rule, retired early. Many 

lights were out when the affair began, many went 

out while it was in progress. All three of the band 

75 



THE COPY-CAT 

steered as clear of lighted houses as possible, and 
dodged behind trees and hedges when shadowy- 
figures appeared on the road or carriage-wheels were 
heard in the distance. At their special destination 
they were sure to be entirely safe. Old Mr. Peter 
Van Ness always retired very early. To be sure, 
he did not go to sleep until late, and read in bed, 
but his room was in the rear of the house on the 
second floor, and all the windows, besides, were 
dark. Mr. Peter Van Ness was a very wealthy 
elderly gentleman, very benevolent. He had given 
the village a beautiful stone church with memorial 
windows, a soldiers' monument, a park, and a home 
for aged couples, called "The Van Ness Home." 
Mr. Van Ness lived alone with the exception of a 
housekeeper and a number of old, very well-disci- 
plined servants. The servants always retired early, 
and Mr. Van Ness required the house to be quiet for 
his late reading. He was a very studious old gentle- 
man. 

To the Van Ness house, set back from the street 
in the midst of a well-kept lawn, the three repaired, 
but not as noiselessly as they could have wished. In 
fact, a light flared in an up-stairs window, which 
was wide open, and one woman's voice was heard 
in conclave with another. 

"I should think," said the first, "that the lawn 
was full of cats. Did you ever hear such a mewing, 
Jane?" 

That was the housekeeper's voice. The three, 
each of whom carried a squirming burlap potato-bag 
from the Trumbull cellar, stood close to a clump 

76 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

of stately pines full of windy songs, and trem- 
bled. 

"It do sound like cats, ma'am," said another voice, 
which was Jane's, the maid, who had brought Mrs. 
Meeks, the housekeeper, a cup of hot water and 
peppermint, because her dinner had disagreed with 
her. 

"Just listen," said Mrs. Meeks. 

"Yes, ma'am, I should think there was hundreds 
of cats and little kittens." 

"I am so afraid Mr. Van Ness will be disturbed." 

"Yes, ma'am." 

"You might go out and look, Jane." 

"Oh, ma'am, they might be burglars!" 

"How can they be burglars when they are cats?" 
demanded Mrs. Meeks, testily. 

Arnold Carruth snickered, and Johnny on one side, 
and Lih" on the other, prodded him with an elbow. 
They were close under the window. 

"Burglars is up to all sorts of queer tricks, ma'am," 
said Jane. "They may mew like cats to tell one 
another what door to go in." 

"Jane, )"ou talk like an idiot," said Mrs. Meeks. 
"Burglars talking like cats! ^Mio ever heard of such 
a thing? It sounds right under that window. Open 
my closet door and get those heavy old shoes and 
throw them out." 

It was an awful moment. The three dared not 
move. The cats and kittens in the bags — not so 
man}-, after all — seemed to have turned into multi- 
plication-tables. They were positively alarming in 
their determination to get out, their wrath with one 

^77 



THE COPY-CAT 

another, and their vociferous discontent with the 
whole situation. 

"I can't hold my bag much longer," said poor little 
Arnold Carruth. 

"Hush up, cry-baby!" whispered Lily, fiercely, 
in spite of a clawing paw emerging from her own 
bag and threatening her bare arm. 

Then came the shoes. One struck Arnold squarely 
on the shoulder, nearly knocking him down and 
making him lose hold of his bag. The other struck 
Lily's bag, and conditions became worse; but she 
held on despite a scratch. Lily had pluck. 

Then Jane's voice sounded very near, as she leaned 
out of the window. "I guess they have went, 
ma'am," said she. "I seen something run." 

"I can hear them," said Mrs. Meeks, queru- 
lously. 

"I seen them run," persisted Jane, who was tired 
and wished to be gone. 

"Well, close that window, anyway, for I know I 
hear them, even if they have gone;" said Mrs. Meeks. 
The three heard with relief the window slammed 
down. 

The light flashed out, and simultaneously Lily 
Jennings and Johnny Trumbull turned indignantly 
upon Arnold Carruth. 

"There, you have gone and let all those poor cats 
go," said Johnny. 

"And spoilt everything," said Lily. 

Arnold rubbed his shoulder. "You would have 
let go if you had been hit right on the shoulder 
by a great shoe," said he, rather loudly, 

78 



JOHNNY-IN-THE-WOODS 

"Hush up!" said Lih\ "I wouldn't have let my 
cats go if I had been killed by a shoe; so there." 

"Serves us right for taking a boy with curls," said 
Johnny Trumbull. 

But he spoke unadvisedly. Arnold Carruth was 
no match whatever for Johnny Trumbull, and had 
never been allowed the honor of a combat with him; 
but surprise takes even a great champion at a dis- 
advantage. Arnold turned upon Johnny like a flash, 
out shot a little white fist, up struck a dimpled leg 
clad in cloth and leather, and down sat Johnny 
Trumbull; and, worse, open flew his bag, and there 
was a yowhng exodus. 

"There go your cats, too, Johnny Trumbull," 
said Lily, in a perfectly calm whisper. At that mo- 
ment both boys, victor and vanquished, felt a simul- 
taneous throb of masculine wrath at Lily. Who was 
she to gloat over the misfortunes of men ? But retri- 
bution came swiftly to Lily. That viciously claw- 
ing little paw shot out farther, and there was a Hmit 
to Spartanism in a little girl born so far from that 
heroic land. Lily let go of her bag and with difli- 
culty stifled a shriek of pain. 

"Whose cats are gone now?" demanded Johnny, 
rising. 

"Yes, whose cats are gone now?" said Arnold. 

Then Johnny promptiy turned upon him and 
knocked him down and sat on him. 

Lily looked at them, standing, a stately little 
figure in the darkness. "I am going home." said 
she. "My mother does not allow me to go with 
fighting boys." 

79 



THE COPY-CAT 

Johnny rose, and so did Arnold, whimpering 
slightly. His shoulder ached considerably. 

"He knocked me down," said Johnny. 

Even as he whimpered and as he suffered, Arnold 
felt a thrill of triumph. "Always knew I could if I 
had a chance," said he. 

"You couldn't if I had been expecting it," said 
Johnny. 

"Folks get knocked down when they ain't ex- 
pecting it most of the time," declared Arnold, with 
more philosophy than he realized. 

"I don't think it makes much difference about the 
knocking down," said Lily. "All those poor cats 
and kittens that we were going to give a good home, 
where they wouldn't be starved, have got away, 
and they will run straight back to Mr. Jim Sim- 
mons's." 

"If they haven't any more sense than to run back 
to a place where they don't get enough to eat and 
are kicked about by a lot of children, let them run," 
said Johnny. 

"That's so," said Arnold. "I never did see what 
we were doing such a thing for, anyway — stealing 
Mr. Simmons's cats and giving them to Mr. Van 
Ness." 

It was the girl alone who stood by her guns of 
righteousness. "I saw and I see," she declared, with 
dangerously loud emphasis. "It was only' our duty 
to try to rescue poor helpless animals who don't 
know any better than to stay where they are badly 
treated. And Mr. Van Ness has so much money he 
doesn't know what to do with it; he would have been 

80 



JOHNNY-IN-T HE-WOODS 

real pleased to give those cats a home and buy milk 
and hver for them. But it's all spoiled now. I will 
never undertake to do good again, with a lot of boys 
in the way, as long as I live; so there!" Lily turned 
about. 

"Going to tell your mother!" said Johnny, with 
scorn which veiled anxiet}-. 

"No, I'm not. I don't tell tales." 

Lily marched off, and in her wake went Johnny 
and Arnold, two poor little disillusioned would-be 
knights of old romance in a wretchedly common- 
place future, not far enough from their horizons for 
any glamour. 

They went home, and of the three Johnny Trum- 
bull was the only one who was discovered. For him 
his aunt Janet lay in wait and forced a confession. 
She listened grimly, but her eyes twinkled. 

"You have learned to fight, John Trumbull," said 
she, when he had finished. "Now the very next 
thing you have to learn, and make yourself worthy 
of your grandfather Trumbull, is not to be a fool." 

"Yes, Aunt Janet," said Johnny. 

The next noon, when he came home from school, 
old Maria, who had been with the family ever since 
he could remember and long before, called him into 
the kitchen. There, greedily lapping milk from a 
saucer, were two very lean, tall kittens." 

"See those nice little tommy-cats," said Maria, 
beaming upon Johnny, whom she loved and whom 
she sometimes fancied deprived of boyish joys. 
"Your aunt Janet sent me over to the Simmonses' 
for them this morning. They are overrun with cats 
6 8i 



THE COPY-CAT 

— such poor, shiftless folks always be — and you can 
have them. We shall have to watch for a little while 
till they get wonted, so they won't run home." 

Johnny gazed at the kittens, fast distending with 
the new milk, and felt presumably much as dear 
Robin Hood may have felt after one of his successful 
raids in the fair, poetic past. 

"Pretty, ain't they?" said Maria. "They have 
drank up a whole saucer of milk. 'Most starved, I 
s pose. 

Johnny gathered up the two forlorn kittens and 
sat down in a kitchen chair, with one on each shoul- 
der, hard, boyish cheeks pressed against furry, pur- 
ring sides, and the little fighting Cock of the Walk 
felt his heart glad and tender with the love of the 
strong for the weak. 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

THE Wise homestead dated back more than a 
century, yet it had nothing imposing about it 
except its site. It was a simple, glaringly white cot- 
tage. There was a center front door with two win- 
dows on each side; there was a low slant of roof, 
pierced by unpicturesque dormers. On the left of 
the house was an ell, which had formerly been used 
as a shoemaker's shop, but now served as a kitchen. 
In the low attic of the ell was stored the shoemaker's 
bench, whereon David ^^'ise's grandfather had sat 
for near!}- eighty jears of working days; after him 
his eldest son, Daniel's father, had occupied the same 
hollow seat of patient toil. Daniel had sat there for 
twenty-odd 3-ears, then had suddenly realized both 
the lack of necessity and the lack of customers, since 
the great shoe-plant had been built down in the vil- 
lage. Then Daniel had retired — although he did 
not use that expression. Daniel said to his friends 
and his niece Dora that he had "quit work." But 
he told himself, %vithout the least bitterness, that 
work had quit him. 

After Daniel had retired, his one physiological 
peculiarit}' assumed enormous proportions. It had 
always been with him, but steady work had held it. 



THE COPY-CAT 

to a gredt extent, at bay. Daniel was a moral 
coward before physical conditions. He was as one 
who suffers, not so much from agony of the flesh as 
from agony of the mind induced thereby. Daniel 
was a coward before one of the simplest, most in- 
evitable happenings of earthly life. He was a coward 
before summer heat. All winter he dreaded summer. 
Summer poisoned the spring for him. Only during 
the autumn did he experience anything of peace. 
Summer was then over, and between him and another 
summer stretched the blessed perspective of winter. 
Then Daniel Wise drew a long breath and looked 
about him, and spelled out the beauty of the earth 
in his simple primer of understanding. Daniel had 
in his garden behind the house a prolific grape-vine. 
He ate the grapes, full of the savor of the dead sum- 
mer, with the gusto of a poet who can at last enjoy 
triumph over his enemy. 

Possibly it was the vein of poetry in Daniel which 
made him a coward — which made him so vulnerable. 
During the autumn he reveled In the tints of the 
landscape which his sitting-room windows com- 
manded. There were many maples and oaks. Day 
by day the roofs of the houses in the village be- 
came more evident, as the maples shed their crimson 
and gold and purple rags of summer. The oaks re- 
mained, great shaggy masses of dark gold and burn- 
ing russet; later they took on soft hues, making 
clearer the blue firmament between the boughs. 
Daniel watched the autumn trees with pure delight. 
"He will go to-day," he said of a flaming maple 
after a night of frost which had crisped the white 

86 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

arches of the grass in his doon'ard. All day he 
sat and watched the maple cast its glory, and did 
not bother much with his simple meals. The Wise 
house was erected on three terraces. Always through 
the dry summer the grass was burned to an ugh' 
negation of color. Later, when rain came, the grass 
was a brilliant green, patched with rosy sorrel and 
golden stars of arnica. Then later still came the 
diamond brilliance of the frost. So dry were the 
terraces in summer-time that no flowers would 
flourish. When Daniel's mother had come to the 
house as a bride she had planted under a window a 
blush-rose bush, but alwajs the blush-roses were 
few and covered with insects. It was not until the 
autumn, when it was time for the flowers to die, that 
the sorrel blessing of waste lands flushed rosily and 
the arnica showed its stars of slender tlireads of 
gold, and there might even be a slight glimpse of 
purple aster and a dustv spray or two of goldenrod. 
Then Daniel did not shrink from the sight of the 
terraces. In summer-time the awful negative glare 
of them under the afternoon sun maddened him. 

In winter he often xisited his brother John in 
the village. He was very fond of John, and John's 
wife, and their onl}- daughter, Dora. When John 
died, and later his wife, he would have gone to live 
with Dora, but she married. Then her husband also 
died, and Dora took up dressmaking, supporting 
herself and her delicate little girl-baby. Daniel 
adored this child. She had been named for him, 
although her mother had been aghast before the propo- 
sition. "Name a girl Daniel, uncle!" she had cried. 

87 



THE COPY-CAT 

"She is going to have what I own after I have 
done with it, anyway," declared Daniel, gazing with 
awe and rapture at the tiny flannel bundle in his 
niece's arms. "That won't make any difference, but 
I do wish you could make up your mind to call her 
after me, Dora." 

Dora Lee was soft-hearted. She named her girl- 
baby Daniel, and called her Danny, which was not, 
after all, so bad, and her old uncle loved the child 
as if she had been his own. Little Daniel — he always 
called her Daniel, or, rather, "Dan'l" — was the only 
reason for his descending into the village on summer 
days when the weather was hot. Daniel, when he 
visited the village in summer-time, wore always a 
green leaf inside his hat and carried an umbrella 
and a palm-leaf fan. This caused the village boys to 
shout, "Hullo, grandma!" after him. Daniel, being 
a little hard of hearing, was oblivious, but he would 
have been in any case. His whole mind was con- 
centrated in getting along that dusty glare of street, 
stopping at the store for a paper bag of candy, and 
finally ending in Dora's little dark parlor, holding his 
beloved namesake on his knee, watching her bliss- 
fully suck a barley stick while he waved his palm- 
leaf fan. Dora would be fitting gowns in the next 
room. He would hear the hum of feminine chatter 
over strictly feminine topics. He felt very much 
aloof, even while holding the little girl on his knee. 
Danielhadnever married — had never evenhad a sweet- 
heart. The marriageable women he had seen had not 
been of the type to attract a dreamer like Daniel Wise. 
Many of those women thought him " a little off." 

88 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

Dora Lee, his niece, privately wondered if her 
uncle had his full allotment of understanding. He 
seemed much more at home with her little daughter 
than with herself, and Dora considered herself a 
very good business woman, with possibly an unusual 
endowment of common sense. She was such a good 
business woman that when she died suddenly she 
left her child with quite a sum in the bank, besides 
the house. Daniel did not hesitate for a moment. 
He engaged Miss Sarah Dean for a housekeeper, 
and took the little girl (hardly more than a baby) 
to his own home. Dora, had left a will, in which 
she appointed Daniel guardian in spite of her doubt 
concerning his measure of understanding. There was 
much comment in the village when Daniel took 
his little namesake to live in his lonely house on 
the terrace. "A man and an old maid to bring up 
that poor child!" they said. But Daniel called 
Dr. Trumbull to his support. "It is much better for 
that delicate child to be out of this village, which 
drains the south hill," Dr. Trumbull declared. 
"That child needs pure air. It is hot enough in 
summer all around here, and hot enough at Daniel's, 
but the air is pure there." 

There was no gossip about Daniel and Miss 
Sarah Dean. Gossip would have seemed about as 
foolish concerning him and a dry blade of field-grass. 
Sarah Dean looked like that. She wore rusty black 
gowns, and her gray-blond hair was swept curtain- 
wise over her ears on either side of her very thin, 
mildly severe wedge of a face. Sarah was a notable 
housekeeper and a good cook. She could make an 

89 



THE COPY-CAT 

endless variety of cakes and puddings and pies, and 
her biscuits were marvels. Daniel had long catered 
for himself, and a rasher of bacon, with an egg, 
suited him much better for supper than hot biscuits, 
preserves, and five kinds of cake. Still, he did not 
complain, and did not understand that Sarah's fare 
was not suitable for the child, until Dr. Trumbull 
told him so. 

"Don't you let that child live on that kind of food 
if you want her to live at all," said Dr. Trumbull. 
"Lord! what are the women made of, and the men 
they feed, for that matter? Why, Daniel, there are 
many people in this place, and hard-working people, 
too, who eat a quantity of food, yet don't get enough 
nourishment for a litter of kittens." 

"What shall I do.?" asked Daniel in a puzzled way. 

"Do? You can cook a beefsteak yourself, can't 
you? Sarah Dean would fry one as hard as sole- 
leather." 

"Yes, I can cook a beefsteak real nice," said 
Daniel. 

"Do it, then; and cook some chops, too, and 
plenty of eggs." 

"I don't exactly hanker after quite so much sweet 
stuff," said Daniel. "I wonder if Sarah's feelings 
will be hurt." 

"It is much better for feelings to be hurt than 
stomachs," declared Dr. Trumbull, "but Sarah's 
feehngs will not be hurt. I know her. She is a wiry 
woman. Give her a knock and she springs back 
into place. Don't worry about her, Daniel." 

When Daniel went home that night he carried a 
90 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

juicy steak, and he cooked it, and he and little Dan'l 
had a square meal. Sarah refused the steak with a 
slight air of hauteur, but she behaved very well. 
When she set away her untasted layer-cakes and 
pies and cookies, she eyed them somewhat anxiously. 
Her standard of values seemed toppling before her 
mental vision. "They will starve to death if they 
live on such victuals as beefsteak, instead of good 
nourishing hot biscuits and cake," she thought. 
After the supper dishes were cleared away she went 
into the sitting-room where Daniel Wise sat beside 
a window, waiting in a sort of stem patience for a 
whiff of air. It was a ver}' close evening. The sun 
was red in the low west, but a heaving sea of mist was 
rising over the lowlands. 

Sarah sat down opposite Daniel. "Close, ain't 
it?" said she. She began knitting her lace edging. 

"Pretty close," replied Daniel. He spoke with 
an effect of forced politeness. Although he had such 
a horror of extreme heat, he was always chary of 
boldly expressing his mind concerning it, for he had 
a feeling that he might be guilty of blasphemy, since 
he regarded the weather as being due to an Almighty 
mandate. Therefore, although he suffered, he was 
extremely polite. 

"It is awful up-stairs in little Dan'l's room," said 
Sarah. "I have got all the windows open except the 
one that's right on the bed, and I told her she needn't 
keep more than the sheet and one comfortable over 
her." 

Daniel looked anxious. "Children ain't ever over- 
come when they are in bed, in the house, are they ?" 

91 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Land, no! I never heard of such a thing. And, 
anjnjvay, little Dan'l's so thin it ain't likely she feels 
the heat as much as some." 

"I hope she don't." 

Daniel continued to sit hunched up on himself, 
gazing with a sort of mournful irritation out of the 
window upon the landscape over which the misty 
shadows vaguely wavered. 

Sarah knitted. She could knit in the dark. After 
a while she rose and said she guessed she would go 
to bed, as to-morrow was her sweeping-day. 

Sarah went, and Daniel sat alone. 

Presently a little pale figure stole to him through 
the dusk — the child, in her straight white night- 
gown, padding softly on tiny naked feet. 

"Is that you, Dan'l?" 

"Yes, Uncle Dan'l." 

"Is it too hot to sleep up in your room.?" 

"I didn't feel so very hot, Uncle Dan'l, but skeet- 
ers were biting me, and a great big black thing just 
flew in my window!" 

"A bat, most hkely." 

"A bat!" Little Dan'l shuddered. She began a 
little stifled wail. "I'm afeard of bats," she la- 
mented. 

Daniel gathered the tiny creature up. "You can 
jest set here with Uncle Dan'l," said he. "It is jest 
a little cooler here, I guess. Once in a while there 
comes a little whiff" of wind." 

"Won't any bats come?" 

"Lord, no! Your Uncle Dan'l won't let any bats 
come within a gun-shot." 

92 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DANL 

The little creature settled dovm contentedh- in the 
old man's lap. Her fair, thin locks fell over his 
shirt-sleeved arm, her upturned profile was sweetly 
pure and clear even in the dusk. She was so deli- 
catelj small that he might have been holding a fairj", 
from the shght roundness of the childish Umbs and 
figure. Poor little girl! — Dan'l was much too small 
and thin. Old man Daniel gazed down at her 
anxiously. 

'■Jest as soon as the nice fall weather comes," 
said he, "uncle is going to take you down to the 
village real often, and you can get acquainted with 
some other nice little girls and pla\' with them, and 
that will do uncle's little Dan'l good." 

"I saw little Lucv Rose, " piped the child, "'and 
she looked at me real pleasant, and Lih" Jennings 
wore a pretty dress. Would they play with me, 
uncle?" 

"Of course they would. You don't feel quite so 
hot, here, do you?" 

'"I wasn't so hot, anj-way; I was afeard of bats." 

"There ain't any bats here." 

"-\nd skeeters.'' 

"Uncle don't believe there's any skeeters, neither." 

"I don't hear any sing, ' agreed Uttle Dan'l in a 
weak voice. \ ery soon she was fast asleep. The 
old man sat holding her, and lo\ing her with a simple 
crystalline intensity which was fairly heavenl)-. He 
himself almost disregarded the heat, being raised 
above it by sheer exaltation of spirit. All the love 
which had lain latent in his heart leaped to life be- 
fore the helplessness of this little child in his arms. 



THE COPY-CAT 

He realized himself as much greater and of more 
importance upon the face of the earth than he had 
ever been before. He became paternity incarnate 
and superblessed. It was a long time before he car- 
ried the httle child back to her room and laid her, 
still as inert with sleep as a lily, upon her bed. He 
bent over her with a curious waving motion of his 
old shoulders as if they bore wings of love and pro- 
tection; then he crept back down-stairs. 

On nights like that he did not go to bed. All the 
bedrooms were under the slant of the roof and were 
hot. He preferred to sit until dawn beside his open 
window, and doze when he could, and wait with 
despairing patience for the infrequent puffs of cool 
air breathing blessedly of wet swamp places, which, 
even when the burning sun arose, would only show 
dewy eyes of cool reflection. Daniel Wise, as he sat 
there through the sultry night, even prayed for 
courage, as a devout sentinel might have prayed 
at his post. The imagination of the deserter was 
not in the man. He never even dreamed of appro- 
priating to his own needs any portion of his savings, 
and going for a brief respite to the deep shadows of 
mountainous places, or to a cool coast, where the 
great waves broke in foam upon the sand, breathing 
out the mighty saving breath of the sea. It never 
occurred to him that he could do anything but re- 
main at his post and suffer in body and soul and 
mind, and not complain. 

The next morning was terrible. The summer had 
been one of unusually fervid heat, but that one day 
was its climax. David went panting up-stairs to 

94 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

his room at dawn. He did not wish Sarah Dean to 
know that he had sat up all night. He opened his 
bed, tidily, as was his wont. Through U\'ing alone 
he had acquired many of the habits of an orderly 
housewife. He went down-stairs, and Sarah was in 
the kitchen. 

"It is a dreadful hot da}," said she as Daniel 
approached the sink to wash his face and hands. 

"It does seem a httle warm," admitted Daniel, 
with his studied air of poUteness with respect to the 
weather as an ordinance of God. 

"Warm!"' echoed Sarah Dean. Her thin face 
blazed a scarlet wedge between the sleek curtains 
of her dank hair; perspiration stood on her triangle 
of forehead. "It is the hottest day I ever knew!" 
she said, defiant!}', and there was open rebelhon in 
her tone. 

"It is sort of warmish, I rather guess," said 
Daniel. 

After breakfast, old Daniel announced his in- 
tention of taking little Dan'l out for a walk. 

At that Sarah Dean fairly exploded. "Be you 
gone clean daft, Dan'l?" said she. "Don't you know 
that it actually ain't safe to take out such a deUcate 
little thing as that on such a day:" 

"Dr. Trumbull said to take her outdoors for a 
walk ever>" day, rain or shine," returned Daniel, 
obstinatel}'. 

"But Dr. Trumbull didn't say to take her out if 
it rained fire and brimstone, I suppose," said Sarah 
Dean, viciously. 

Daniel looked at her with mild astonishment. 

9S 



THE COPY-CAT 

"It is as much as that child's hfe is worth to take 
her out such a day as this," declared Sarah, viciously. 

"Dr. Trumbull said to take no account of the 
weather," said Daniel with stubborn patience, "and 
we will walk on the shady side of the road, and 
go to Bradley's Brook. It's always a Httle cool 
there." 

"If she faints away before you get there, you 
bring her right home," said Sarah. She was almost 
ferocious. "Just because you don't feel the heat, 
to take out that Httle pindHn' girl such a day!" she 
exclaimed. 

"Dr. Trumbull said to," persisted Daniel, al- 
though he looked a little troubled. Sarah Dean 
did not dream that, for himself, Daniel Wise would 
have preferred facing an army with banners to going 
out under that terrible fusillade of sun-rays. She 
did not dream of the actual heroism which actuated 
him when he set out with little Dan'l, holding his 
big umbrella over her little sunbonneted head and 
waving in his other hand a palm-leaf fan. 

Little Dan'l danced with glee as she went out of 
the yard. The small, anemic creature did not feel 
the heat except as a stimulant. Daniel had to keep 
charging her to walk slowly. "Don't go so fast, 
little Dan'l, or you'll get overhet, and then what 
will Mis' Dean say.?" he continually repeated. 

Little Dan'l's thin, pretty face peeped up at him 
from between the sides of her green sunbonnet. She 
pointed one dainty finger at a cloud of pale yellow 
butterflies in the field beside which they were walk- 
ing. "Want to chase flutterbies," she chirped. 

96 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

Little Dan'l had a fascinating yr3.y of misplacing 
her consonants in long words. 

"No; you'll get overhet. You just walk along 
slow with Uncle Dan'l, and pretty soon ^ye'll come 
to the pretty brook, " said Daniel. 

"Where the lagon-dries live?" asked little Dan'l, 
meaning dragon-flies. 

"Yes," said Daniel. He was conscious, as he 
spoke, of increasing waves of thread}- black floating 
before his eyes. They had floated since dawn, but 
now they were increasing. Some of the time he 
could hardly see the narrow sidewalk path between 
the dusty meadowsweet and hardback bushes, since 
those floating black threads wove together into a 
veritable veil before him. At such times he walked 
unsteadily, and little Dan'l eyed him curiously. 

"Why don't you walk the way you always do?" 
she queried. 

"Uncle Dan'l can't see jest straight, somehow," 
replied the old man; "guess it's because it's rather 
warm." 

It was in truth a day of terror because of the heat. 
It was one of those da3's which break records, which 
live in men's memories as great catastrophes, which 
furnish head-Unes for newspapers, and are alluded 
to with shudders at past suff"erings. It was one of 
those days which seem to forecast the Dreadful 
Day of Revelation wherein no shelter may be found 
from the judgment of the fiery firmament. On that 
day men fell in their tracks and died, or were rushed 
to hospitals to be succored as by a miracle. And on 
that day the poor old man who had all his life feared 
7 97 



THE COPY-CAT 

and dreaded the heat as the most loathly happening 
of earth, walked afield for love of the little child. 
As Daniel went on the heat seemed to become pal- 
pable — something which could actually be seen. 
There was now a thin, gaseous horror over the blaz- 
ing sky, which did not temper the heat, but in- 
creased it, giving it the added torment of steam. 
The clogging moisture seemed to brood over the 
accursed earth, Hke some foul bird with deadly 
menace in wings and beak. 

Daniel walked more and more unsteadily. Once 
he might have fallen had not the child thrown one 
little arm around a bending knee. "You 'most 
tumbled down. Uncle Dan'l," said she. Her little 
voice had a surprised and frightened note in it. 

"Don't you be scared," gasped Daniel; "we 
have got 'most to the brook; then we'll be all right. 
Don't you be scared, and — ^you walk real slow and 
not get overhet." 

The brook was near, and it was time. Daniel 
staggered under the trees beside which the little 
stream trickled over its bed of stones. It was not 
much of a brook at best, and the drought had caused 
it to lose much of its life. However, it was still 
there, and there were delicious little hollows of cool- 
ness between the stones over which it flowed, and 
large trees stood about with their feet rooted in the 
blessed damp. Then Daniel sank down. He tried to 
reach a hand to the water, but could not. The 
black veil had woven a compact mass before his 
eyes. There was a terrible throbbing in his head, 
but his arms were numb. 

98 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

Little Dan'l stood looking at him, and her lip 
quivered. With a mighty effort Daniel cleared 
away the veil and saw the piteous baby face. "Take 
— Uncle DanTs hat and — fetch him — some water," 
he gasped. "Don't go too — close and — tumble in." 

The child obeyed. Daniel tried to take the drip- 
ping hat, but failed. Little Dan'l was wise enough 
to pour the water over the old man's head, but she 
commenced to weep, the pitiful, despairing wail of 
a child who sees failing that upon which she has 
leaned for support. 

Daniel rallied again. The water on his head gave 
him momentary relief, but more than anything else 
his love for the child nerved him to effort. 

"Listen, little Dan'l," he said, and his voice 
sounded in his own ears like a small voice of a soul 
thousands of miles away. "You take the — um- 
brella, and — you take the fan, and you go real slow, 
so you don't get overhet, and you tell Mis' Dean, 
and—" 

Then old Daniel's tremendous nerve, that he had 
summoned for the sake of love, failed him, and he 
sank back. He was quite unconscious — his face, 
staring blindly up at the terrible sky between the 
trees, was to little Dan'l like the face of a stranger. 
She gave one cry, more like the yelp of a trodden 
animal than a child's voice. Then she took the open 
umbrella and sped away. The umbrella bobbed 
wildly — nothing could be seen of poor little Dan'l 
but her small, speeding feet. She wailed loudly all 
the way. 

She was half-way home when, plodding along in 

99 



THE COPY-CAT 

a cloud of brown dust, a horse appeared in the road. 
The horse wore a straw bonnet and advanced very 
slowly. He drew a buggy, and in the buggy were 
Dr. Trumbull and Johnny, his son. He had called 
at Daniel's to see the little girl, and, on being told 
that they had gone to walk, had said something 
under his breath and turned his horse's head down 
the road. 

"When we meet them, you must get out, Johnny," 
he said, "and I will take in that poor old man and 
that baby. I wish I could put common sense in 
every bottle of medicine. A day like this!" 

Dr. Trumbull exclaimed when he saw the great 
bobbing black umbrella and heard the wails. The 
straw-bonneted horse stopped abruptly. Dr. Trum- 
bull leaned out of the buggy. "Who are you?" he 
demanded. 

"Uncle Dan'l is gone," shrieked the child. 

"Gone where.? What do you mean?" 

"He — tumbled right down, and then he was — 
somebody else. He ain't there." 

"Where is 'there'? Speak up quick!" 

"The brook — Uncle Dan'l went away at the 
brook." 

Dr. Trumbull acted swiftly. He gave Johnny a 
push. "Get out," he said. "Take that baby into 
Jim Mann's house there, and tell Mrs. Mann to 
keep her in the shade and look out for her, and you 
tell Jim, if he hasn't got his horse in his farm-wagon, 
to look lively and harness her in and put all the ice 
they've got in the house in the wagon. Hurry!" 

Johnny was over the wheel before his father had 

lOO 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

finished speaking, and Jim Mann just then drew up 
alongside in his farm-wagon. 

"What's to pay?" he inquired, breathless. He 
was a thin, sinewj' man, scantily clad in cotton 
trousers and a shirt wide open at the breast. Green 
leaves protruded from under the brim of his tilted 
straw hat. 

"Old Daniel Wise is overcome by the heat," an- 
swered Dr. Trumbull. "Put all the ice you have 
in the house in your wagon, and come along. I'll 
leave my horse and buggy here. Your horse is faster." 

Presently the farm-wagon clattered down the road, 
dust-hidden behind a galloping horse. Mrs. Jim 
Mann, who was a loving mother of children, was 
soothing little Dan'l. Johnny Trumbull watched 
at the gate. When the wagon returned he ran out 
and hung on behind, while the strong, ungainly 
farm-horse galloped to the house set high on the 
sun-baked terraces. 

When old Daniel revived he found himself in the 
best parlor, with ice all about him. Thunder was 
rolling overhead and hail clattered on the windows. 
A sudden storm, the heat-breaker, had come up and 
the dreadful day was vanquished. Daniel looked 
up and smiled a vague smile of astonishment at Dr. 
Trumbull and Sarah Dean; then his eyes wandered 
anxiously about. 

"The child is all right," said Dr. Trumbull; 
"don't you worry, Daniel. Mrs. Jim Mann is tak- 
ing care of her. Don't you try to talk. You didn't 
exactly have a sunstroke, but the heat was too much 
for you." 

lOI 



THE COPY-CAT 

But Daniel spoke, in spite of the doctor's man- 
date. "The heat," said he, in a curiously clear 
voice,"ain't never goin' to be too much for me again." 

"Don't you talk, Daniel," repeated Dr. Trum- 
bull. "You've always been nervous about the heat. 
Maybe you won't be again, but keep still. When I 
told you to take that child out every day I didn't 
mean when the world was Hke Sodom and Gomor- 
rah. Thank God, it will be cooler now." 

Sarah Dean stood beside the doctor. She looked 
pale and severe, but adequate. She did not even 
state that she had urged old Daniel not to go out. 
There was true character in Sarah Dean. 

The weather that summer was an unexpected 
quantity. Instead of the day after the storm being 
cool, it was hot. However, old Daniel, after his re- 
covery, insisted on going out of doors with little 
Dan'l after breakfast. The only concession which 
he would make to Sarah Dean, who was fairly fran- 
tic with anxiety, was that he would merely go down 
the road as far as the big elm-tree, that he would sit 
down there, and let the child play about within sight. 

"You'll be brought home ag'in, sure as preachin'," 
said Sarah Dean, "and if you're brought home ag'in, 
you won't get up ag'in." 

Old Daniel laughed. "Now don't you worry, 
Sarah," said he. "I'll set down under that big ellum 
and keep cool." 

Old Daniel, at Sarah's earnest entreaties, took a 
palm-leaf fan. But he did not use it. He sat peace- 
fully under the cool trail of the great elm all the 
forenoon, while Uttle Dan'l played with her doll. 

lOZ 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

The child was rather languid after her shock of the 
da}'^ before, and not disposed to run about. Also, 
she had a great sense of responsibility about the old 
man. Sarah Dean had privately charged her not 
to let Uncle Daniel get "overhet." She continually 
glanced up at him with loving, anxious, baby eyes. 

"Be you overhet, Uncle Dan'l?" she would ask. 

"No, little Dan'l, uncle ain't a mite overhet," 
the old man would assure her. Now and then little 
Dan'l left her doll, climbed into the old man's lap, 
and waved the palm-leaf fan before his face. 

Old Daniel Wise loved her so that he seemed, to 
himself, fairly alight with happiness. He made up his 
mind that he would find some little girl in the village 
to come now and then and play with little Dan'l. 
In the cool of that evening he stole out of the back 
door, covertly, lest Sarah Dean discover him, and 
walked slowlj' to the rector's house in the village. 
The rector's wife was sitting on her cool, vine-shaded 
veranda. She was alone, and Daniel was glad. He 
asked her if the Httle girl who had come to live with 
her. Content Adams, could not come the next after- 
noon and see little Dan'l. "Little Dan'l had ought 
to see other children once in a while, and Sarah Dean 
makes real nice cookies," he stated, pleadingly. 

Sally Patterson laughed good-naturedly. "Of 
course she can, Mr. Wise," she said. 

The next afternoon Sallj' herself drove the rec- 
tor's horse, and brought Content to pay a call on 
little Dan'l. Sally and Sarah Dean visited in the 
sitting-room, and left the little girls alone in the 
parlor with a plate of cookies, to get acquainted. 

103 



THE COPY-CAT 

They sat in solemn silence and stared at each other. 
Neither spoke. Neither ate a cooky. When Sally 
took her leave, she asked Httle Dan'l if she had had 
a nice time with Content, and little Dan'l said, 
"Yes, ma'am." 

Sarah insisted upon Content's carrying the cookies 
home in the dish with a napkin over it. 

"When can I go again to see that other little girl?" 
asked Content ias she and Sally were jogging home. 

"Oh, almost any time. I will drive you over — 
because it is rather a lonesome walk for you. Did 
you Hke the little girl? She is younger than you." 

"Yes'm." 

Also little Dan'l inquired of old Daniel when the 
other little girl was coming again, and nodded em- 
phatically when asked if she had had a nice time. 
Evidently both had enjoyed, after the inscrutable 
fashion of childhood, their silent session with each 
other. Content came generally once a week, and 
old Daniel was invited to take little Dan'l to the 
rector's. On that occasion Lucy Rose was present, 
and Lily Jennings. The four little girls had tea to- 
gether at a little table set on the porch, and only 
Lily Jennings talked. The rector drove old Daniel , 
and the child home, and after they had arrived the 
child's tongue was loosened and she chattered. She 
had seen everything there was to be seen at the rec- 
tor's. She told of it in her little silver pipe of a voice. 
She had to be checked and put to bed, lest she be 
tired out. 

"I never knew that child could talk so much," Sarah 
said to Daniel, after the little girl had gone up-stairs. 

104 




HE REALIZFI-" THAT THt FEAR OF HI> WHOLE LIEF \\"\S OVERCOME 

FOR EVER 



DANIEL AND LITTLE DAN'L 

"She talks quite some when she's alone with me." 

"And she seems to see everything. " 

"Ain't much that child don't see," said Daniel, 
proudl)'. 

The summer continued unusually hot, but Daniel 
never again succumbed, ^^^len autumn came, for 
the first time in his old life old Daniel Wise was 
sorrowful. He dreaded the effect of the frost and 
the winter upon his precious little Dan'l, whom he 
put before himself as fondh* as an\' father could 
have done, and as the season progressed his dread 
seemed justified. Poor little Dan'l had cold after 
cold. Content Adams and Lucy Rose came to see 
her. The rector's wife and the doctor's sent dainties. 
But the child coughed and pined, and old Daniel 
began to look forward to spring and summer — the 
seasons which had been his bugaboos through life 
— as if they were angels. \Mien the February thaw 
came, he told httle Dan'l, "Jest look at the snow 
meltin' and the drops hangin' on the trees; that is 
a sign of summer." 

Old Daniel watched for the first green light along 
the fences and the meadow hollows. \Mien the trees 
began to cast slightly blurred shadows, because of 
budding leaves, and the robins hopped over the 
terraces, and now and then the air was cleft with 
blue wings, he became jubilant. "Spring is jest 
about here, and then uncle's little Dan'l will stop 
coughin', and run out of doors and pick flowers," he 
told the child beside the window. 

Spring came that year with a riotous rush. Blos- 
soms, leaves, birds, and flowers — all arrived pell- 

105 



THE COPY-CAT 

mell, fairly smothering the world with sweetness 
and music. In May, about the first of the month, 
there was an intensely hot day. It was as hot as 
midsummer. Old Daniel with little Dan'l went 
afield. It was, to both, as if they fairly saw the car- 
nival-arrival of flowers, of green garlands upon tree- 
branches, of birds and butterflies. "Spring is right 
here!" said old Daniel. "Summer is right here! 
Pick them vi'lets in that holler, little Dan'l." The 
old man sat on a stone in the meadowland, and 
watched the child in the blue-gleaming hollow gather 
up violets in her little hands as if they were jewels. 
The sun beat upon his head, the air was heavy with 
fragrance, laden with moisture. Old Daniel wiped 
his forehead. He was heated, but so happy that he 
was not aware of it. He saw wonderful new lights 
over everything. He had wielded love, the one in- 
vincible weapon of the whole earth, and had con- 
quered his intangible and dreadful enemy. When, 
for the sake of that little beloved life, his own Ufe 
had become as nothing, old Daniel found himself 
superior to it. He sat there in the tumultuous heat 
of the May day, watching the child picking violets 
and gathering strength with every breath of the 
young air of the year, and he realized that the fear 
of his whole life was overcome for ever. He realized 
that never again, though they might bring suff"ering, 
even death, would he dread the summers with their 
torrid winds and their burning lights, since, through 
love, he had become under-lord of all the conditions 
of his life upon earth. 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

TT did seem strange that Sally Patterson, who, 
* according to her own self- estimation, was the 
least adapted of an)- woman in the village, should 
have been the one chosen b}- a theoreticall}- selective 
providence to deal with a psychological problem. 

It was conceded that little Content Adams was a 
psychological problem. She was the oqihan child of 
very distant relatives of the rector. When her par- 
ents died she had been cared for by a widowed aunt 
on her mother's side, and this aunt had also borne 
the reputation of being a creature apart, ^^^^en the 
aunt died, in a small \-illage in the indefinite "Out 
West," the presiding clergyman had notified Edward 
Patterson of little Content's lonely and helpless 
estate. The aunt had subsisted upon an annuity 
which had died with her. The child had inherited 
nothing except personal propertw The aunt's house 
had been bequeathed to the church over which the 
clergyman presided, and after her aunt's death he 
took her to his own home until she could be sent to 
her relatives, and he and his wife were exceedingly 
punctilious about every jot and tittle of the aunt's 
personal belongings. They even purchased two 
extra trunks for them, which they charged to the 
rector. 



THE COPY-CAT 

Little Content, traveling in the care of a lady who 
had known her aunt and happened to be coming 
East, had six large trunks, besides a hat-box and two 
suit-cases and a nailed-up wooden box containing 
odds and ends. Content made quite a sensation 
when she arrived and her baggage was piled on the 
station platform. 

Poor Sally Patterson unpacked little Content's 
trunks. She had sent the little girl to school within 
a few days after her arrival. Lily Jennings and 
Amelia Wheeler called for her, and aided her down 
the street between them, arms interlocked. Content, 
although Sally had done her best with a pretty 
ready-made dress and a new hat, was undeniably a 
peculiar-looking child. In the first place, she had 
an expression so old that it was fairly uncanny. 

"That child has downward curves beside her 
mouth already, and lines between her eyes, and what 
she will look like a few years hence is beyond me," 
Sally told her husband after she had seen the little 
girl go out of sight between Lily's curls and ruffles 
and ribbons and AmeHa's smooth skirts. 

"She doesn't look like a happy child," agreed the 
rector. "Poor little thing! Her aunt Eudora must 
have been a queer woman to train a child." 

"She is certainly trained," said Sally, ruefully; 
"too much so. Content acts as if she were afraid to 
move or speak or even breathe unless somebody 
signals permission. I pity her." 

She was in the storeroom, in the midst of Con- 
tent's baggage. The rector sat on an old chair, 
smoking. He had a conviction that it behooved him 

no 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

as a man to stand b}' his wife during what might 
prove an ordeaL He had known Content's deceased 
aunt years before. He had also known the clergj^man 
who had taken charge of her personal property and 
sent it on with Content. 

" Be prepared for finding ahnost anything, Sally," 
he observed. "IMr. Zenock Shanksbun", as I re- 
member him, was so conscientious that it amounted 
to mania. I am sure he has sent simply unspeakable 
things rather than incur the reproach of that con- 
science of his with regard to defrauding Content of 
one jot or tittle of that personal property." 

Sally shook out a long, black silk dress, with jet 
dangling here and there. "Now here is this dress," 
said she. "I suppose I really must keep this, but 
when that child is grown up the silk will probably 
be cracked and entireh" worthless." 

"You had better take the two trunks and pack 
them with such things, and take your chances." 

"Oh, I suppose so. I suppose I must take chances 
with everything except furs and wools, which will 
collect moths. Oh, goodness!" Sall}^ held up an 
old-fashioned fitch fur tippet. Littie vague winged 
things came from it Uke dust. " Moths!"' said she, 
tragicallj-. "Cloths now. It is full of them. Ed- 
ward, you need not tell me that cIerg}Tnan"s wife 
was conscientious. No conscientious woman would 
have sent an old fur tippet all eaten with moths into 
another woman's house. She could not." 

Sally took flJ^ng leaps across the storeroom. She 
flung open the window and tossed out the mangy 
tippet. "This is simply awful!" she declared, as she 

III 



THE COPY-CAT 

returned. "Edward, don't you think we are justi- 
fied in having Thomas take all these things out in 
the back yard and making a bonfire of the whole 
lot?" 

"No, my dear." 

"But, Edward, nobody can tell what will come 
next. If Content's aunt had died of a contagious 
disease, nothing could induce me to touch another 
thing." 

"Well, dear, you know that she died from the 
shock of a carriage accident, because she had a weak 
heart." 

"I know it, and of course there is nothing con- 
tagious about that." Sally took up an ancient 
bandbox and opened it. She displayed its contents: 
a very frivolous bonnet dating back in style a half- 
century, gay with roses and lace and green strings, 
and another with a heavy crape veil dependent. 

"You certainly do not advise me to keep these?" 
asked Sally, despondently. 

Edward Patterson looked puzzled. "Use your 
own judgment," he said, finally. 

Sally summarily marched across the room and 
flung the gay bonnet and the mournful one out of the 
window. Then she took out a bundle of very old 
underwear which had turned a saffron yellow with 
age. " People are always coming to me for old linen 
in case of burns," she said, succinctly. "After these 
are washed I can supply an auto da fe." 

Poor Sally worked all that day and several days 
afterward. The rector deserted her, and she relied 
upon her own good sense in the disposition of little 

112 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

Content's legacy. When all was over she told her 
husband. 

"Well, Edward," said she, "there is exactly one 
trunk half full of things which the child may live to 
use, but it is highly improbable. We have had six 
bonfires, and I have given away three suits of old 
clothes to Thomas's father. The clothes were very 
large." 

"Must have belonged to Eudora's first husband. 
He was a stout man," said Edward. 

"And I have given two small suits of men's clothes 
to the Aid Societ}' for the next out-West barrel." 

"Eudora's second husband's." 

"And I gave the washerwoman enough old baking- 
dishes to last her lifetime, and some cracked dishes. 
Most of the dishes were broken, but a few were only 
cracked; and I have given Silas Thomas's wife ten 
old wool dresses and a shawl and three old cloaks. 
All the other things which did not go into the bon- 
fires went to the Aid Society. Thej- will go back out. 
West." Sally laughed, a girlish peal, and her hus- 
band joined. But suddenly her smooth forehead 
contracted. "Edward," said she. 

"Well, dear?" 

"I am terribly puzzled about one thing." The 
two were sitting in the study. Content had gone to 
bed. Nobody could hear easily, but Sally Patterson 
lowered her voice, and her honest, clear blue eyes had 
a frightened expression. 

"WTiat is it, dear?" 

"You \v\\l think me very silly and cowardh", and 
I think I have never been cowardly, but this is really 

8 113 



THE COPY-CAT 

very strange. Come with me. I am such a goose, 
I don't dare go alone to that storeroom." 

The rector rose. Sally switched on the lights as 
they went up-stairs to the storeroom. 

"Tread very softly," she whispered. "Content is 
probably asleep." 

The two tiptoed up the stairs and entered the 
storeroom. Sally approached one of the two new 
trunks which had come with Content from out West. 
She opened it. She took out a parcel nicely folded 
in a large towel. 

"See here, Edward Patterson." 

The rector stared as Sally shook out a dress — 
a gay, up-to-date dress, a young girl's dress, a very 
tall young girl's, for the skirts trailed on the floor as 
Sally held it as high as she could. It was made of 
a fine white muslin. There was white lace on the 
bodice, and there were knots of blue ribbon scattered 
over the whole, knots of blue ribbon confining tiny 
bunches of rosebuds and daisies. These knots of 
blue ribbon and the little flowers made it undeniably 
a young girl's costume. Even in the days of all ages 
wearing the costumes of all ages, an older woman 
would have been abashed before those exceedingly 
youthful knots of blue ribbons and flowers. 

The rector looked approvingly at it. "That is 
very pretty, it seems to me," he said. "That must 
be worth keeping, Sally." 

"Worth keeping! Well, Edward Patterson, just 
wait. You are a man, and of course you cannot un- 
derstand how very strange it is about the dress." 

The rector looked inquiringly. 
114 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"I want to know," said Sally, "if Content's aunt 
Eudora had an}' young relative besides Content. I 
mean had she a grown-up young girl relative who 
would wear a dress like this?" 

"I don't know of anybody. There might have 
been some relative of Eudora's first husband. No, 
he was an only child. I dont think it possible that 
Eudora had any young girl relative." 

"If she had," said Sallv, firmly, "she would have 
kept this dress. You are sure there was nobody 
else living with Content's aunt at the time she died : ' 

"Xobody except the servants, and they were an 
old man and his wife. ' 

"Then whose dress was this: ' 

"I don't know, Sally." 

"You don't know, and I don't. It is ver\' strange." 

"I suppose," said Edward Patterson, helpless be- 
fore the feminine problem, ''that — Eudora got it in 
some way." 

"In some way," repeated Sally. "That is always 
a man's way out of a mystery- when there is a mys- 
tery^. There is a master}". There is a master}- which 
worries me. I have not told 3-ou all yet, Edward." 

"What more is there, dear:' 

"I — asked Content whose dress this was, and 
she said — Oh, Edward, I do so despise m}^steries." 

"WTiat did she say. Sail)?" 

"She said it was her big sister Solly's dress." 

"Her what?" 

"Her big sister Soll3''s dress. Edward, has Con- 
tent ever had a sister? Has she a sister now?" 

"No, she never had a sister, and she has none 
11; 



THE COPY-CAT 

now," declared the rector, emphatically. "I knew 
all her family. What in the world ails the child.?" 

"She said her big sister Solly, Edward, and the 
very name is so inane. If she hasn't any big sister 
Solly, what are we going to do.?" 

"Why, the child must simply lie," said the rector. 

"But, Edward, I don't think she knows she lies. 
You may laugh, but I think she is quite sure that 
she has a big sister Solly, and that this is her dress. 
I have not told you the whole. After she came home 
from school to-day she went up to her room, and 
she left the door open, and pretty soon I heard her 
talking. At first I thought perhaps Lily or Amelia 
was up there, although I had not seen either of 
them come in with Content. Then after a while, 
when I had occasion to go up-stairs, I looked in her 
room, and she was quite alone, although I had heard 
her talking as I went up-stairs. Then I said: 'Con- 
tent, I thought somebody was in your room. I 
heard you talking.' 

"And she said, looking right into my eyes: 'Yes, 
ma'am, I was talking.' 

'"But there is nobody here,' I said. 

'"Yes, ma'am,' she said. 'There isn't anybody 
here now, but my big sister Solly was here, and she 
is gone. You heard me talking to my big sister 
Solly.' I felt faint, Edward, and you know it takes 
a good deal to overcome me. I just sat down in 
Content's wicker rocking-chair. I looked at her and 
she looked at me. Her eyes were just as clear and 
blue, and her forehead looked like truth itself. She 
is not exactly a pretty child, and she has a pecuHar 

ii6 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

appearance, but she does certainly look truthful and 
good, and she looked so then. She had tried to 
fluff her hair over her forehead a little as I had 
told her, and not pull it back so tight, and she wore 
her new dress, and her face and hands were as clean, 
and she stood straight. You know she is a little 
inclined to stoop, and I have talked to her about 
it. She stood straight, and looked at me with those 
blue eyes, and I did feel fairly dizzy." 

"What did you sayr" 

"Well, after a bit I pulled myself together and 
I said: 'My dear little girl, what is this? What do 
you mean about your big sister Sarah.?' Edward, 
I could not bring myself to say that idiotic Solly. 
In fact, I did think I must be mistaken and had not 
heard correctly. But Content just looked at me 
as if she thought me very stupid. 'Solly,' said she. 
'My sister's name is Solly.' 

'"But, my dear,' I said, 'I understand that you 
had no sister.' 

"'Yes,' said she, 'I have my big sister Solly.' 

"'But where has she been all the time?' said I. 

"Then Content looked at me and smiled, and it 
was quite a wonderful smile, Edward. She smiled 
as if she knew so much more than I could ever 
know, and quite pitied me." 

"She did not answer your question: " 

"No, only by that smile which seemed to tell 
whole volumes about that awful Solly's whereabouts, 
only I was too ignorant to read them. 

'"Where is she now, dear?' I said, after a little. 

'"She is gone now,' said Content. 
"7 



THE COPY-CAT 

"'Gone where?' said I. 

"And then the child smiled at me again. Edward, 
what are we going to do? Is she untruthful, or has 
she too much imagination ? I have heard of such a 
thing as too much imagination, and children telling 
lies which were not really lies." 

"So have I," agreed the rector, dryly, "but I 
never believed in it." The rector started to leave 
the room. 

"What are you going to do?" inquired Sally. 

"I am going to endeavor to discriminate between 
lies and imagination," replied the rector. 

Sally plucked at his coat -sleeve as they went 
down-stairs. "My dear," she whispered, "I think 
she is asleep." 

"She will have to wake up." 

"But, my dear, she may be nervous. Would 
it not be better to wait until to-morrow?" 

"I think not," said Edward Patterson. Usually 
an easy-going man, when he was aroused he was 
determined to extremes. Into Content's room he 
marched, Sally following. Neither of them saw 
their small son Jim peeking around his door. He 
had heard — he could not help it — the conversation 
earlier in the day between Content and his mother. 
He had also heard other things. He now felt entirely 
justified in listening, although he had a good code 
of honor. He considered himself in a way respon- 
sible, knowing what he knew, for the peace of 
mind of his parents. Therefore he listened, peeking 
around the doorway of his dark room. 

The electric light flashed out from Content's 
ii8 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

room, and the little interior was revealed. It was 
chamungly pretty. Sally had done her best to make 
this not altogether welcome little stranger's room 
attractive. There were garlands of rosebuds swung 
from the top of the white satin-papered walls. 
There were daint}' toilet things, a little dressing- 
table decked with ivory, a case of books, chairs 
cushioned with rosebud chintz, windows curtained 
with the same. 

In the little white bed, with a rose-sprinkled cover- 
lid over her, lay Content. She was not asleep. 
Directly, when the light flashed out, she looked at 
the rector and his wife with her clear blue ejes. Her 
fair hair, braided neati}' and tied with pink ribbons, 
lay in two tails on either side of her small, certainly 
very good face. Her forehead was beauriful, verj' 
white and full, giving her an expression of candor 
which was even noble. Content, little lonely girl 
among strangers in a strange place, mutely beseech- 
ing love and pit}-, from her whole attitude toward 
life and the world, looked up at Edward Patterson 
and Sally, and the rector realized that his determina- 
tion was giving way. He began to believe in imagi- 
nation, even to the extent of a sister Solly. He had 
never had a daughter, and sometimes the thought 
of one had made his heart tender. His voice was 
very kind when he spoke. 

"Well, Uttle girl," he said, "what is this I hear?" 

Sally stared at her husband and stifled a chuckle. 

As for Content, she looked at the rector and said 
nothing. It was obvious that she did not know 
what he had heard. The rector explained. 

119 



THE COPY-CAT 

"My dear little girl," he said, "your aunt Sally" 
— they had agreed upon the relationship of uncle and 
aunt to Content — "tells me that you have been 
telling her about your — big sister Solly." The rector 
half gasped as he said Solly. He seemed to himself 
to be on the driveling verge of idiocy before the pro- 
nunciation of that absurdly inane name. 

Content's responding voice came from the pink- 
and-white nest in which she was snuggled, like the 
fluting pipe of a canary. 

"Yes, sir," said she. 

"My dear child," said the rector, "you know 
perfectly well that you have no big sister — Solly." 
Every time the rector said Solly he swallowed hard. 

Content smiled as Sally had described her smiling. 
She said nothing. The rector felt reproved and 
looked down upon from enormous heights of inno- 
cence and childhood and the wisdom thereof. How- 
ever, he persisted. 

"Content," he said, "what did you mean by 
telling your aunt Sally what you did.?" 

"I was talking with my big sister Solly," replied 
Content, with the calmness of one stating a funda- 
mental truth of nature. 

The rector's face grew stern. "Content," he said, 
"look at me." 

Content looked. Looking seemed to be the in- 
stinctive action which distinguished her as an indi- 
vidual. 

"Have you a big sister — Solly?" asked the rector. 
His face was stern, but his voice faltered. 

"Yes, sir." 

1 20 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"Then — tell me so." 

"I have a big sister Solly," said Content. Now 
she spoke rather wearily, although still sweetly, as 
if puzzled why she had been disturbed in sleep to 
be asked such an obvious question. 

"Where has she been all the time, that we have 
known nothing about her.''" demanded the rector. 

Content smiled. However, she spoke. "Home," 
said she. 

"When did she come here?" 

"This morning." 

"Where is she now?" 

Content smiled and was silent. The rector cast 
a helpless look at his wife. He now did not care 
if she did see that he was completely at a loss. 
How could a great, robust man and a clergyman 
be harsh to a tender little girl child in a pink-and- 
white nest of innocent dreams ? 

Sally pitied him. She spoke more harshly than 
her husband. "Content Adams," said she, "you 
know perfectly well that you have no big sister 
Solly. Now tell me the truth. Tell me you have 
no big sister Solly." 

"I have a big sister Solly," said Content. 

"Come, Edward," said Sally. "There is no use 
in staying and talking to this obstinate httle girl 
any longer." Then she spoke to Content. "Before 
you go to sleep," said she, "you must say your 
prayers, if you have not already done so." 

"I have said my prayers," replied Content, and 
her blue eyes were full of horrified astonishment at 
the suspicion. 

121 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Then," said Sally, "you had better^ say them 
over and add something. Pray that you may always 
tell the truth." 

"Yes, ma'am." said Content, in her little canary 
pipe. 

The rector and his wife went out. Sally switched 
off the light with a snap as she passed. Out in the 
hall she stopped and held her husband's arms hard. 
"Hush!" she whispered. They both listened. They 
heard this, in the faintest plaint of a voice: 

"They don't believe you are here. Sister Solly, 
but I do." 

Sally dashed back into the rosebud room and 
switched on the light. She stared around. She 
opened a closet door. Then she turned off the light 
and joined her husband. 

"There was nobody there?" he whispered. 

"Of course not." 

When they were back in the study the rector 
and his wife looked at each other. 

"We will do the best we can," said Sally. "Don't 
worry, Edward, for you have to write your sermon 
to-morrow. We will manage some way. I will admit 
that I rather wish Content had had some other 
distant relative besides you who could have taken 
charge of her." 

"You poor child!" said the rector. "It is hard 
on you, Sally, for she is no kith nor kin of yours." 

"Indeed I don't mind," said Sally Patterson, "if 
only I can succeed in bringing her up." 

Meantime Jim Patterson, up-stairs, sitting over 
his next day's algebra lesson, was even more per- 

122 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

plexed than were his parents in the study. He paid 
little attention to his book. "I can manage little 
Luc}'," he reflected, "but if the others have got hold 
of it, I don't know." 

Presently he rose and stole very softh^ through 
the hall to Content's door. She was timid, and 
always left it open so she could see the hall hght 
until she fell asleep. "Content," whispered Jim. 

There came the faintest "What?" in response. 

"Don't you," said Jim, in a theatrical whisper, 
"say another word at school to ambodj- about your 
big sister Solly. If you do, I'll whop you, if you 
are a girl." 

"Don't care!" was sighed forth from the room. 

"And I'll whop 30ur old big sister Solly, too." 

There was a tiny sob. 

"I will," declared Jim. "Now 3-ou mind!" 

The next da^- Jim cornered little Lucy Rose under 
a cedar-tree before school began. He paid no atten- 
tion to Bubby Harvey and Tom Simmons, who were 
openly sniggering at him. Little Lucy gazed up 
at Jim, and the blue-green shade of the cedar seemed 
to bring out only more clearly the white-rose softness 
of her dear Uttle face. Jim bent over her. 

"Want you to do something for me," he whis- 
pered. 

Little Lucy nodded gravely. 

"If m}' new cousin Content ever says anything 
to you again — I heard her yesterday- — about her 
big sister Solly, don't you ever say a word about it 
to anybody else. You will promise me, won't you, 
little Lucy?" 

123 



THE COPY-CAT 

A troubled expression came into little Lucy's kind 
eyes. "But she told Lily, and Lily told Amelia, and 
Amelia told her grandmother Wheeler, and her 
grandmother Wheeler told Miss Parmalee when she 
met her on the street after school, and Miss Parma- 
lee called on my aunt Martha and told her," said 
little Lucy. 

"Oh, shucks!" said Jim. 

"And my aunt Martha told my father that she 
thought perhaps she ought to ask for her when she 
called on your mother. She said Arnold Carruth's 
aunt Flora was going to call, and his aunt Dorothy. 
I heard Miss Acton tell Miss Parmalee that she 
thought they ought to ask for her when they called 
on your mother, too." 

"Little Lucy," he said, and lowered his voice, 
"you must promise me never, as long as you live, 
to tell what I am going to tell you." 

Little Lucy looked frightened. 

"Promise!" insisted Jim. 

"I promise," said little Lucy, in a weak voice. 

"Never, as long as you live, to tell anybody. 
Promise 1" 

"I promise." 

"Now, you know if you break your promise and 
tell, you will be guilty of a dreadful lie and be very 
wicked." 

Little Lucy shivered. "I never will." 

"Well, my new cousin Content Adams — tells lies." 

Little Lucy gasped. 

"Yes, she does. She says she has a big sister 
Solly, and she hasn't got any big sister Solly. She 

124 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

never did have, and she never will have. She makes 
believe." 

"Makes believe?" said little Lucy, in a hopeful 
voice. 

" Making believe is just a real mean vray of l.Hng. 
Now I made Content promise last night never to 
sa\- one word in school about her big sister Solh", and 
I am going to tell 3'ou this, so \-ou can tell Lily and 
the others and not lie. Of course, I don't want to 
lie myself, because m\- father is rector, and, besides, 
mother doesn't approve of it; but if anybody is 
going to lie, I am the one. Now, you mind, little 
Luc\-. Content's big sister Solly has gone away. 
and she is never coming back. If you tell Lily and 
the others I said so, I can't see how }-ou will be Ij'ing." 

Little Lucy gazed at the boy. She looked like 
truth incarnate. "But," said she, in her adorable 
stupidity of innocence, "I don't see how she could 
go away if she was never here, Jim." 

"Oh, of course she coiddn't. But all you have to 
do is to say that )-ou heard me say she had gone. 
Don't you understand."" 

"I don't understand how Content's big sister Solly 
could possibly go away if she was never here." 

''Little Lucy, I wouldn't ask you to tell a lie for 
the world, but if you were just to say that you heard 
me say — " 

"I think it would be a lie," said little Lucy, "be- 
cause how can I help knowing if she was never here 
she couldn't — " 

"Oh, well, little Lucy," cried Jim, in despair, still 
with tenderness — how could he be anything but 



THE COPY-CAT 

tender with little Lucy? — "all I ask is never to say 
anything about it." 

"If they ask me?" 

"Anyway, you can hold your tongue. You know 
it isn't wicked to hold your tongue." 

Little Lucy absurdly stuck out the pointed tip of 
her little red tongue. Then she shook her head 
slowly. 

"Well," she said, "I will hold my tongue." 

This encounter with innocence and logic had left 
him worsted. Jim could see no way out of the fact 
that his father, the rector, his mother, the rector's 
wife, and he, the rector's son, were disgraced by 
their relationship to such an unsanctified little soul 
as this queer Content Adams. 

And yet he looked at the poor lonely little girl, who 
was trying very hard to learn her lessons, who sug- 
gested in her very pose and movement a little, scared 
rabbit ready to leap the road for some bush of hiding, 
and while he was angry with her he pitied her. He 
had no doubts concerning Content's keeping her 
promise. He was quite sure that he would now say 
nothing whatever about that big sister Solly to the 
others, but he was not prepared for what happened 
that very afternoon. 

When he went home from school his heart stood 
still to see Miss Martha Rose, and Arnold Carruth's 
aunt Flora, and his aunt who was not his aunt, Miss 
Dorothy Vernon, who was visiting her, all walking 
along in state with their lace-trimmed parasols, 
their white gloves, and their nice card-cases. Jim 
jumped a fence and raced across lots home, and 

126 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

gained on them. He burst in on his mother, sitting 
on the porch, which was inclosed by wire netting 
overgrown with a budding vine. It was the first 
warm day of the season. 

"Mother," cried Jim Patterson — "mother, they 
are coming!" 

"Who, for goodness' sake, Jim?" 

"Wh}-, Arnold's aunt Flora and his aunt Dorothy 
and little Lucy's aunt Martha. They are coming to 
call." 

Involuntarily Sally's hand went up to smooth her 
pretty hair. "Well, what of it. Jim:"' said she. 

"Mother, they will ask for — ^big sister Solly!" 

Sally Patterson turned pale. "How do you 
know?" 

"Mother, Content has been talking at school. A 
lot know. You will see they ^^411 ask for — " 

"Run right in and tell Content to stay in her 
room, " whispered Sally, hastil}"^, for the callers, 
their white-kidded hands holding their card-cases 
genteelly, were coming up the walk. 

Sally advanced, smiling. She put a brave face 
on the matter, but she realized that she, Sally 
Patterson, who had never been a coward, was 
positivel}- afraid before this absurdity. The callers 
sat with her on the pleasant porch, with the young 
vine-shadows making networks over their best gowns. 
Tea was served presently b\' the maid, and, much to 
Sally's relief, before the maid appeared came the 
inquiry. Miss Martha Rose made it. 

"We would be pleased to see Miss Solly Adams 
also," said Miss Martha. 

127 



THE COPY-CAT 

Flora Carruth echoed her. "I was so glad to hear 
another nice girl had come to the village," said she 
with enthusiasm. Miss Dorothy Vernon said some- 
thing indefinite to the same effect. 

"I am sorry," replied Sally, with an effort, "but 
there is no Miss Solly Adams here now." She spoke 
the truth as nearly as she could manage without 
unraveling the whole ridiculous affair. The callers 
sighed with regret, tea was served with little cakes, 
and they fluttered down the walk, holding their card- 
cases, and that ordeal was over. 

But Sally sought the rector in his study, and she 
was trembling. "Edward," she cried out, regardless 
of her husband's sermon, "something must be done 
now." 

"Why, what is the matter, Sally?" 

"People are — calling on her." 

"Calling on whom?" 

"Big sister — Solly!" Sally explained. 

"Well, don't worry, dear," said the rector. "Of 
course we will do something, but we must think it 
over. Where is the child now?" 

"She and Jim are out in the garden. I saw them 
pass the window just now. Jim is such a dear boy, 
he tries hard to be nice to her. Edward Patterson, 
we ought not to wait." 

"My dear, we must." 

Meantime Jim and Content Adams were out in 
the garden. Jim had gone to Content's door and 
tapped and called out, rather rudely: "Content, I 
say, put on your hat and come along out in the 
garden. I've got something to tell you." 

128 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"Don't want to," protested Content's little voice, 
faintly. 

"You come right along." 

And Content came along. She was an obedient 
child, and she liked Jim, although she stood much 
in awe of him. She followed him into the garden 
back of the rectory, and they sat down on the bench 
beneath the weeping ^^^llow. The minute they were 
seated Jim began to talk. 

"Now," said he, "I want to know." 

Content glanced up at him, then looked down 
and turned pale. 

"I want to know, honest Injun," said Jim, "what 
rou are telling such awful whoppers about jour old 
big sister SoUj^ for?" 

Content was silent. This time she did not smile, 
a tear trickled out of her right e}"e and ran over the 
pale cheek. 

"Because you know," said Jim, observant of the 
tear, but ruthless, "that you haven't any big sister 
Solly, and never did have. You are getting us all 
in an awful mess over it, and father is rector 
here, and mother is his wife, and I am his 
son, and you are his niece, and it is downright 
mean. Why do you tell such whoppers? Out 
with it!" 

Content was trembling violently. "I lived with 
Aunt Eudora," she whispered. 

"Well, what of that? Other folks have lived 
with their aunts and not told whoppers." 

"The)- haven't lived with Aunt Eudora." 

"You ought to be ashamed of yourself. Content 
9 1^9 



THE COPY-CAT 

Adams, and you the rector's niece, talking that way 
about dead folks." 

"I don't mean to talk about poor Aunt Eudora," 
fairly sobbed Content. "Aunt Eudora was a real 
good aunt, but she was grown up. She was a good 
deal more grown up than your mother; she really 
was, and when I first went to live with her I was 
'most a. little baby; I couldn't speak — plain, and 
I had to go to bed real early, and slept 'way off from 
everybody, and I used to be afraid — all alone, and 
so—" 

"Well, go on," said Jim, but his voice was softer. 
It was hard lines for a little kid, especially if she 
was a girl. 

"And so," went on the little, plaintive voice, "I 
got to thinking how nice it would be if I only had 
a big sister, and I used to cry and say to myself — I 
couldn't speak plain, you know, I was so little — 
'Big sister would be real solly.' And then first 
thing I knew — she came." 

"Who came?" 

"Big sister Solly." 

"What rot! She didn't come. Content Adams, 
you know she didn't come." 

"She must have come." persisted the little girl, 
in a frightened whisper. "She must have. Oh, Jim, 
you don't know. Big sister Solly must have come, 
or I would have died like my father and mother." 

Jim's arm, which was near her, twitched convul- 
sively, but he did not put it around her. 

"She did — co-me," sobbed Content. "Big sister 
Solly did come." 

130 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"Well, have it so," said Jim, suddenly. "No use 
going over that any longer. Have it she came, but 
she ain't here now, an\-^'ay. Content Adams, you 
can't look me in the face and tell me that. " 

Content looked at Jim, and her little face was 
almost terrible, so full of bewilderment and fear 
it was. "Jim," whispered Content, "I can't have 
big sister Solly not be here. I can't send her away. 
\Miat wotJd she think?" 

Jim stared. "Think? Wh)-, she isn't alive to 
think, anyhow!" 

"I can't make her — dead," sobbed Content. "She 
came when I wanted her, and now when I don't so 
much, when I've got Uncle Edward and Aunt Sally 
and you, and don't feel so dreadful lonesome, I 
can't be so bad as to make her dead." 

Jim whistled. Then his face brightened up. He 
looked at Content with a shrewd and cheerful grin. 
"See here, kid, you say j'our sister Solly is big, 
grown up, don't your" he inquired. 

Content nodded pitifully. 

"Then wh}-, if she is grown up and pretty, don't 
she have a beau?" 

Content stopped sobbing and gave him a quick 
glance. 

"Then — ^why doesn't she get married, and go out 
West to live?" 

Jim chuckled. Instead of a sob, a faint echo of his 
chuckle came from Content. 

Jim laughed merrily. "I say. Content," he cried, 
"let's have it she's married now, and gone: ' 

"Well," said Content. 

131 



THE COPY-CAT 

Jim put his arm around her very nicely and pro- 
tectingly. "It's all right, then," said he, "as all 
right as it can be for a girl. Say, Content, ain't it 
a shame you aren't a boy?" 

"I can't help it," said Content, meekly. 

"You see," said Jim, thoughtfully, "I don't, as 
a rule, care much about girls, but if you could coast 
down-hill and skate, and do a few things like that, 
you would be almost as good as a boy." 

Content surveyed him, and her pessimistic little 
face assumed upward curves. "I will," said she. 
"I will do anything, Jim. I will fight if you want 
me to, just like a boy." 

"I don't believe you could lick any of us fellers 
unless you get a good deal harder in the muscles," 
said Jim, eying her thoughtfully; "but we'll play 
ball, and maybe by and by you can begin with 
Arnold Carruth." 

"Could lick him now," said Content. 

But Jim's face sobered before her readiness. "Oh 
no, you mustn't go to fighting right away," said he. 
"It wouldn't do. You really are a girl, you know, 
and father is rector." 

"Then I won't," said Content; "but I could knock 
down that little boy with curls; I know I could." 

"Well, you needn't. I'll like you just as well. 
You see. Content" — Jim's voice faltered, for he was 
a boy, and on the verge of sentiment before which 
he was shamed — "you see. Content, now your big 
sister Solly is married and gone out West, why, you 
can have me for your brother, and of course a 
brother is a good deal better than a sister." 

132 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"Yes," said Content, eagerl}'. 

"I am going," said Jim, "to marry Lucy Rose 
when I grow up, but I haven't got any sister, and 
I'd like you first rate for one. So I'll be your big 
brother instead of your cousin." 

"Big brother Solly?" 

"Say, Content, that is an awful name, but I don't 
care. You're only a girl. You can call me any- 
thing you want to, but you mustn't call me Solly 
when there is anybody within hearing." 

"I won't." 

"Because it wouldn't do," said Jim with weight. 

"I never will, honest," said Content. 

Presently they went into the house. Dr. Trum- 
bull was there; he had been talking seriously to the 
rector and his wife. He had come over on purpose. 

"It is a perfect absurdit}'," he said, "but I made 
ten calls this morning, and ever\"where I was asked 
about that little Adams girl's big sister — why you 
keep her hidden. They have a theory that she is 
either an idiot or dreadfully disfigured. I had to 
tell them I know nothing about it." 

"There isn't any girl, ' said the rector, wearily. 
"Sally, do explain." 

Dr. Trumbull listened. "I have known such 
cases," he said when Sally had finished. 

"What did you do for them?" Sally asked, anx- 
iously. 

"Nothing. Such cases have to be cured by time. 
Children get over these fancies when they grow up." 

" Do 3"ou mean to say that we have to put up with 
big sister Solly until Content is grown up:" asked 

133 



THE COPY-CAT 

Sally, in a desperate tone. And then Jim came in. 
Content had run up-stairs. 

"It is all right, mother," said Jim. 

Sally caught him by the shoulders. "Oh, Jim, 
has she told you?" 

Jim gave briefly, and with many omissions, an 
account of his conversation with Content. 

"Did she say anything about that dress, Jim?" 
asked his mother. 

"She said her aunt had meant it for that out- 
West rector's daughter Alice to graduate in, but 
Content wanted it for her big sister Solly, and told 
the rector's wife it was hers. Content says she knows 
she was a naughty girl, but after she had said it she 
was afraid to say it wasn't so. Mother, I think that 
poor little thing is scared 'most to death." 

"Nobody is going to hurt her," said Sally. 
"Goodness! that rector's wife was so conscientious 
that she even let that dress go. Well, I can send it 
right back, and the girl will have it in time for her 
graduation, after all. Jim dear, call the poor child 
down. Tell her nobody is going to scold her." 
Sally's voice was very tender. 

Jim returned with Content. She had on a little 
ruffled pink gown which seemed to reflect colof on 
her cheeks. She wore an inscrutable expression, at 
once child-like and charming. She looked shy, fur- 
tively amused, yet happy. Sally realized that the 
pessimistic downward lines had disappeared, that 
Content was really a pretty little girl. 

Sally put an arm around the small, pink figure. 
"So you and Jim have been talking, dear?" she said. 

134 




A LITTLF S'KAL OF LAlt^HTER CA\IF FROM THF SOFT ML <LIN 
FOLDS 



BIG SISTER SOLLY 

"Yes, mn'am," replied little Content. "Jim is 
my big brother — " She just caught herself before 
she said Solly. 

"And your sister Soil}* is married and living out 
West?" 

"Yes," said Content, with a long breath. "My 
sister Solh" is married." Smiles broke all over her 
little face. She hid it in Sally's skirts, and a little 
peal of laughter like a bird-trill came from the soft 
muslin folds. 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 



BACK of the rertoiy there was a splendid, long 
hill. The ground receded until the rectory 
garden was reached, and the hill was guarded on 
either flank by a thick growth of pines and cedars, 
and, being a part of the land appertaining to the 
rectort", was never in^'aded by the village children. 
This was considered ven- fortunate by Mrs. Patterson, 
Jim's mother, and for an odd reason. The rector's 
wife was veri" fond of coasting, as she was of most 
out-of-door sports, but her dignified position pre- 
vented her from enjo^-ing them to the utmost. In 
many localities the clergjTnan's wife might have 
played golf and tennis, have rode and swum and 
coasted and skated, and nobody thought the worse 
of her; but in The Village it was different. 

Sally had therefore rejoiced at the discovery of 
that splendid, isolated hill behind the house. It 
could not have been improved upon for a long, per- 
fectly glorious coast, winding up on the pool of ice 
in the garden and bumping thrillingly between dry 
vegetables. Mrs. Patterson steered and Jim made the 
running pushes, and slid flat on his chest behind 
his mother. Jim was very proud of his mother. He 
often wished that he felt at liberty to tell of her 

139 



THE COPY-CAT 

feats. He had never been told not to tell, but real- 
ized, being rather a sharp boy, that silence was 
wiser. Jim's mother confided in him, and he re- 
spected her confidence. "Oh, Jim dear," she would 
often say, "there is a mothers' meeting this after- 
noon, and I would so much rather go coasting with 
you." Or, "There's a Guild meeting about a fair, 
and the ice in the garden is really quite smooth." 

It was perhaps unbecoming a rector's wife, but 
Jim loved his mother better because she expressed a 
preference for the sports he loved, and considered that 
no other boy had a mother who was quite equal to 
his. Sally Patterson was small and wiry, with a bright 
face, and very thick, brown hair, which had a boyish 
crest over her forehead, and she could run as fast 
as Jim. Jim's father was much older than his mother, 
and very dignified, although he had a keen sense of 
humor. He used to laugh when his wife and son 
came in after their coasting expeditions. 

"Well, boys," he would say, "had a good time.?" 

Jim was perfectly satisfied and convinced that his 
mother was the very best and most beautiful per- 
son in the village, even in the whole world, until 
Mr. Cyril Rose came to fill a vacancy of cashier in 
the bank, and his daughter, little Lucy Rose, as 
a matter of course, came with him. Little Lucy 
had no mother. Mr. Cyril's cousin, Martha Rose, 
kept his house, and there was a colored maid with a 
bad temper, who was said, however, to be inval- 
uable "help." 

Little Lucy attended Madame's school. She 
came the next Monday after Jim and his friends had 

140 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

planned to have a chicken roast and failed. After 
Jim saw Httle Lucy he thought no more of the 
chicken roast. It seemed to him that he thought 
no more of an}-thing. He could not b}- any possi- 
bility have learned his lessons had it not been for 
the desire to appear a good scholar before Uttle Lucy. 
Jim had never been a self-conscious boy, but that 
da}- he was so keenh" worried about her opinion of 
him that his usual eas}- swing broke into a strut 
when he crossed the room. He need not have been 
so troubled, because little Lucy was not looking at 
him. She was not looking at any boy or girl. She 
was only tr}-ing to learn her lesson. Little Lucy was 
that rather rare creature, a very gentle, obedient 
child, with a single eye for her dut}-. She was so 
charming that it was sad to think how much her 
mother had missed, as far as this world was con- 
cerned. 

The minute Madame saw her a singular light 
came into her eyes — the light of love of a childless 
woman for a child. Similar lights were in the eyes 
of Miss Parmalee and Miss Acton. They looked 
at one another with a sort of sweet confidence when 
they were drinking tea together after school in Ma- 
dame's study. 

"Did \-ou ever see such a darling.?" said Madame. 
Miss Parmalee said she never had, and Miss Acton 
echoed her. 

"She is a little angel," said Madame. 

" She worked so hard over her geography lesson," 
said Miss Parmalee, "and she got the Amazon River 
in New England and the Connecticut in South 

141 



THE COPY-CAT 

America, after all; but she was so sweet about it, 
she made me want to change the map of the world. 
Dear little soul, it did seem as if she ought to have 
rivers and everything else just where she chose." 

"And she tried so hard to reach an octave, and her 
little finger is too short," said Miss Acton; "and she 
hasn't a bit of an ear for music, but her little voice 
is so sweet it does not matter." 

"I have seen prettier children," said Madame, 
"but never one quite such a darling." 

Miss Parmalee and Miss Acton agreed with Ma- 
dame, and so did everybody else. Lily Jennings's 
beauty was quite eclipsed by little Lucy, but Lily 
did not care; she was herself one of little Lucy's 
most fervent admirers. She was really Jim Patter- 
son's most formidable rival in the school. "You 
don't care about great, horrid boys, do you, dear?" 
Lily said to Lucy, entirely within hearing of Jim 
and Lee Westminster and Johnny Trumbull and 
Arnold Carruth and Bubby Harvey and Frank Ellis, 
and a number of others who glowered at her. 

Dear little Lucy hesitated. She did not wish to 
hurt the feelings of boys, and the question had been 
loudly put. Finally she said she didn't know. Lack 
of definite knowledge was little Lucy's rock of refuge 
in time of need. She would look adorable, and say 
in her timid little fluty voice, "I don't — know." 
The last word came always with a sort of gasp which 
was alluring. All the listening boys were convinced 
that little Lucy loved them all individually and gen- 
erally, because of her "I don't — know." 

Everybody was convinced of little Lucy's afFec- 
142 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

tion for evenbody, which was one reason for her 
charm. She flattered without knowing that she did 
so. It was impossible for her to look at any U%"ing 
thing except with soft eyes of love. It was imp>os- 
sible for her to speak without every tone convej-ing 
the sweetest deference and admiration. The whole 
atmosphere of Madame's school changed with the 
advent of the little girl. Everj^bod}" tried to live 
up to little Lucy's supposed ideal, but in reality' 
she had no ideal. Luc}' was the simplest of Kttle 
girls, only intent upon being good, doing as she was 
told, and winning her father's approval, also her 
cousin Martha's. 

Martha Rose was quite elderly, although still 
good-looking. She was not popular, because she 
was veri," silent. She dressed becomingly, received 
calls and returned them, but hardly spoke a word. 
People rather dreaded her coming. Miss Martha 
Rose would sit composedly in a proffered chair, her 
gloved hands crossed over her nice, gold-bound card- 
case, her chin tilted at an angle which never varied, 
her mouth in a set smile which never wavered, her 
slender feet in their best shoes toeing out precisely 
under the smooth sweep of her gray silk skirt. Miss 
^Martha Rose dressed alwa3"s in gra}", a fashion 
which the village people grudgingh" admired. It 
was undoubtedly becoming and distinguished, but 
savored ever so slightly of ostentation, as did her 
custom of always dressing httle Lucy in blue. There 
were different shades and fabrics, but blue it always 
was. It was the best color for the child, as it re- 
vealed the fact that her big, dark eyes were blue. 

143 



THE COPY-CAT 

Shaded as they were by heavy, curly lashes, they 
would have been called black or brown, but the blue 
in them leaped to vision above the blue of blue 
frocks. Little Lucy had the finest, most delicate 
features, a mist of soft, dark hair, which curled 
slightly, as mist curls, over sweet, round temples. 
She was a small, daintily clad child, and she spoke 
and moved daintily and softly; and when her blue 
eyes were fixed upon anybody's face, that person 
straightway saw love and obedience and trust in 
them, and love met love half-way. Even Miss 
Martha Rose looked another woman when little 
Lucy's innocent blue eyes were fixed upon her rather 
handsome but colorless face between the folds of 
her silvery hair; Miss Martha's hair had turned 
prematurely gray. Light would come into Martha 
Rose's face, light and animation, although she never 
talked much even to Lucy. She never talked much 
to her cousin Cyril, but he was rather glad of it. 
He had a keen mind, but it was easily diverted, and 
he was engrossed in his business, and concerned lest 
he be disturbed by such things as feminine chatter, 
of which he certainly had none in his own home, if 
he kept aloof from Jenny, the colored maid. Hers 
was the only female voice ever heard to the point 
of annoyance in the Rose house. 

It was rather wonderful how a child like little 
Lucy and Miss Martha lived with so little conversa- 
tion. Martha talked no more at home than abroad; 
moreover, at home she had not the attitude of wait- 
ing for some one to talk to her, which people outside 
considered trying. Martha did not expect her cousin 

144 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

to talk to her. She seldom asked a question. She 
almost never volunteered a perfectly useless obser- 
vation. She made no remarks upon self-evident 
topics. If the sun shone, she never mentioned it. 
If there was a heavy rain, she never mentioned that. 
Miss Martha suited her cousin exactly, and for that 
reason, aside from the fact that he had been devoted 
to little Lucy's mother, it never occurred to him to 
marry again. Little Lucy talked no more than Miss 
Martha, and nobody dreamed that she sometimes 
wanted somebody to talk to her. Nobody dreamed 
that the dear little girl, studying her lessons, learn- 
ing needlework, trying very futilely to play the 
piano, was lonely; but she was without knowing 
it herself. Martha was so kind and so still; and her 
father was so kind and so still, engrossed in his papers 
or books, often sitting by himself in his own study. 
Little Lucy in this peace and stillness was not hav- 
ing her share of childhood. \Mien other little girls 
came to play with her. Miss Martha enjoined quiet, 
and even Lih' Jennings's bird-like chattering be- 
came subdued. It was only at school that Lucy 
got her chance for the irresponsible delight which 
was the simple right of her childhood, and there her 
zeal for her lessons prevented. She was happy at 
school, however, for there she lived in an atmos- 
phere of demonstrative affection. The teachers 
were given to seizing her in fond arms and caress- 
ing her, and so were her girl companions; while 
the boys, especially Jim Patterson, looked wistful- 
ly on. 
Jim Patterson was in love, a charming little poetical 
10 145 



THE COPY-CAT 

boy-love; but it was love. Everything which he 
did in those days was with the thought of little 
Lucy for incentive. He stood better in school than 
he had ever done before, but it was all for the sake 
of little Lucy. Jim Patterson had one talent, rather 
rudimentary, still a talent. He could play by ear. 
His father owned an old violin. He had been in- 
clined to music in early youth, and Jim got per- 
mission to practise on it, and he went by himself 
in the hot attic and practised. Jim's mother did 
not care for music, and her son's preliminary scra- 
ping tortured her. Jim tucked the old fiddle under 
one round boy-cheek and played in the hot attic, 
with wasps buzzing around him; and he spent his 
pennies for catgut, and he learned to mend fiddle- 
strings; and finally came a proud Wednesday after- 
noon when there were visitors in Madame's school, 
and he stood on the platform, with Miss Acton 
playing an accompaniment on the baby grand piano, 
and he managed a feeble but true tune on his violin. 
It was all for little Lucy, but little Lucy cared no 
more for music than his mother; and while Jim was 
playing she was rehearsing in the depths of her mind 
the little poem which later she was to recite; for 
this adorable little Lucy was, as a matter of course, 
to figure in the entertainment. It therefore happened 
that she heard not one note of Jim Patterson's pain- . 
fully executed piece, for she was saying to herself 
in mental singsong a foolish little poem, beginning: 

There was one little flower that bloomed 
Beside a cottage door. 
146 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

When she went forward, little darling blue-clad 
figure, there was a murmur of admiration; and when 
she made mistakes straight through the poem, saying. 

There was a little flower that feU 
On my aunt Martha's floor, 

for beginning, there was a roar of tender laughter 
and a clapping of tender, maternal hands, and every- 
body wanted to catch hold of little Lucy and kiss her. 
It was one of the irresistible charms of this child 
that people loved her the more for her mistakes, 
and she made many, although she tried so very 
hard to avoid them. Little Lucy %\-as not in the 
least brilliant, but she held love like a precious vase, 
and it gave out perfume better than mere knowledge. 

Jim Patterson was so deeply in love with her when 
he went home that night that he confessed to his 
mother. INIrs. Patterson had led up to the subject 
by alluding to Kttle Lucy while at the dinner-table, 

"Edward," she said to her husband — both she 
and the rector had been present at Madame's school 
entertainment and the tea-drinking afterward — "did 
you ever see in all your life such a darling little girl 
as the new cashier's daughter? She quite makes up 
for Miss Martha, who sat here one solid hour, hold- 
ing her card-case, waiting for me to talk to her. 
That child is simply delicious, and I was so glad 
she made mistakes." 

"Yes, she is a charming child," assented the rector, 
"despite the fact that she is not a beauty, hardly 
even pretty." 

147 



THE COPY-CAT 

"I know it," said Mrs. Patterson, "but she has the 
worth of beauty." 

Jim was quite pale while his father and mother 
were talking. He swallowed the hot soup so fast 
that it burnt his tongue. Then he turned very 
red, but nobody noticed him. When his mother 
came up-stairs to kiss him good night he told her. 

"Mother," said he, "I have something to tell 
you." 

"All right, Jim," replied Sally Patterson, with her 
boyish air. 

"It is very important," said Jim. 

Mrs. Patterson did not laugh; she did not even 
smile. She sat down beside Jim's bed and looked 
seriously at his eager, rapt, shamed little boy-face 
on the pillow. "Well.?" said she, after a minute 
which seemed difficult to him. 

Jim coughed. Then he spoke with a blurt. 
"Mother," said Jim, "by and by, of course not quite 
yet, but by and by, will you have any objection to 
Miss Lucy Rose as a daughter.?" 

Even then Sally Patterson did not laugh or even 
smile. "Are you thinking of marrying her, Jim?" 
asked she, quite as if her son had been a man. 

"Yes, mother," replied Jim. Then he flung up 
his httle arms in pink pajama sleeves, and Sally 
Patterson took his face between her two hands and 
kissed him warmly. 

"She is a darling, and your choice does you credit, 
Jim," said she. "Of course you have said nothing 
to her yet?" 

"I thought it was rather too soon." 
148 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

"I really think you are very wise, Jim," said his 
mother. "It is too soon to put such ideas into 
the poor child's head. She is younger than you, 
isn't she, Jim?" 

"She is just six months and three days younger," 
replied Jim, with majesty. 

"I thought so. Well, you know, Jim, it would 
just wear her all out, as young as that, to be obliged 
to think about her trousseau and housekeeping and 
going to school, too." 

"I know it," said Jim, with a pleased air. "I 
thought I was right, mother." 

"Entirely right; and you, too, really ought to 
finish school, and take up a profession or a busi- 
ness, before you say anything definite. You would 
want a nice home for the dear little thing, you 
know that, Jim." 

Jim stared at his mother out of his white pillow. 
"I thought I would stay with you, and she would 
stay with her father until we were both very much 
older," said he. "She has a nice home now, you 
know, mother." 

Sally Patterson's mouth twitched a little, but she 
spoke quite gravely and reasonably. "Yes, that is 
very true," said she; "still, I do think you are wise 
to wait, Jim." 

When Sally Patterson had left Jim, she looked in 
on the rector in his stud)'. "Our son is thinking 
seriously of marrying, Edward," said she. 

The rector stared at her. She had shut the door, 
and she laughed. 

"He is very discreet. He has consulted me as to 

149 



THE COPY-CAT 

my approval of her as daughter and announced his 
intention to wait a httle while." 

The rector laughed; then he wrinkled his forehead 
uneasily. "I don't like the little chap getting such 
ideas," said he. 

"Don't worry, Edward; he hasn't got them," 
said Sally Patterson. 

"I hope not." 

"He has made a very wise choice. She is that 
perfect darling of a Rose girl who couldn't speak 
her piece, and thought we all loved her when we 
laughed." 

"Well, don't let him get foolish ideas; that is all, 
my dear," said the rector. 

"Don't worry, Edward. I can manage him," 
said Sally. 

But she was mistaken. The very next day Jim 
proposed in due form to little Lucy. He could not 
help it. It was during the morning intermission, 
and he came upon her seated all alone under a haw- 
thorn hedge, studying her arithmetic anxi-ously. 
She was in blue, as usual, and a very perky blue bow 
sat on her soft, dark hair, like a bluebird. She 
glanced up at Jim from under her long lashes. 

"Do two and seven make eight or ten? If you 
please, will you tell me.?" said she. 

"Say, Lucy," said Jim, "will you marry me by 
and by.?" 

Lucy stared at him uncomprehendingly. 

"Will you?" 

"Will I what?" 

"Marry me by and by?" 
ISO 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

Lucy took refuge in her little harbor of ignorance. 
"I don't know," said she. 

"But you like me, don't you, Lucy?" 

"I don't know." 

"Don't you like me better than you like Johnny 
Trumbull ?" 

"I don't know." 

"You like me better than you Hke Arnold Carruth, 
don't you? He has curls and wears socks." 

"I don't know." 

"When do you think you can be sure?" 

"I don't know." 

Jim stared helplessly at little Lucy. She stared 
back sweetly. 

"Please tell me whether two and seven make 
six or eleven, Jim," said she. 

"They make nine," said Jim. 

"I have been counting my fingers and I got it 
eleven, but I suppose I must have counted one finger 
twice," said little Lucy. She gazed reflectively at 
her little baby-hands. A tiny ring with a blue stone 
shone on one finger. 

"I will give you a ring, you know," Jim said, 
coaxingly. 

"I have got a ring my father gave me. Did you 
say it was ten, please, Jim ?" 

"Nine," gasped Jim. 

"All the way I can remember," said little Luc)'^, 
"is for you to pick just so many leaves off the hedge, 
and I will tie them in my handkerchief, and just be- 
fore I have to say my lesson I will count those 
leaves." 

151 



THE COPY-CAT 

Jim obediently picked nine leaves from the haw- 
thorn hedge, and Uttle Lucy tied them into her 
handkerchief, and then the Japanese gong sounded 
and they went back to school. 

That night after dinner, just before Lucy went to 
bed, she spoke of her own accord to her father and 
Miss Martha, a thing which she seldom did. "Jim 
Patterson asked me to marry him when I asked him 
what seven and two made in my arithmetic lesson," 
said she. She looked with the loveliest round eyes 
of innocence first at her father, then at Miss Martha. 
Cyril Rose gasped and laid down his newspaper. 

"What did you say, little Lucy.?" he asked. 

"Jim Patterson asked me to marry him when I 
asked him to tell me how much seven and two made 
in my arithmetic lesson." 

Cyril Rose and his cousin Martha looked at each 
other. 

"Arnold Carruth asked me, too, when a great 
big wasp flew on my arm and frightened me." 

Cyril and Martha continued to look. The little, 
sweet, uncertain voice went on. 

"And Johnny Trumbull asked me when I 'most 
fell down on the sidewalk; and Lee Westminster 
asked me when I wasn't doing anything, and so did 
Bubby Harvey." 

"What did you tell them?" asked Miss Martha, 
in a faint voice. 

"I told them I didn't know." 

"You had better have the child go to bed now," 
said Cyril. "Good night, little Lucy. Always tell 
father everything." 

152 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

"Yes, father," said little Lucy, and was kissed, 
and went away with Martha. 

When Martha returned, her cousin looked at her 
severely. He was a fair, gentle-looking man, and 
severity was impressive when he assumed it. 

"Really, Martha," said he, "don't you think you 
had better have a little closer outlook over that 
baby?" 

"Oh, Cyril, I never dreamed of such a thing," 
cried Miss Martha. 

"You really must speak to Madame," said Cyril. 
"I cannot have such things put into the child's 
head." 

"Oh, Cyril, how can L?" 

"I think it is your duty." 

"Cyril, could not — ^you?" 

C)-ril grinned. "Do you think," said he, "that 
I am going to that elegant widow schoolma'am and 
say, 'Madame, my young daughter has had four 
proposals of marriage in one day, and I must beg 
you to put a stop to such proceedings ' .'' No, Martha; 
it is a woman's place to do such a thing as that. 
The whole thing is too absurd, indignant as I am 
about it. Poor little soul !" 

So it happened that Miss Martha Rose, the next 
day being Saturday, called on Madame, but, not 
being asked an}- leading question, found herself abso- 
lutely unable to deliver herself of her errand, and 
went away with it unfulfilled. 

"Well, I must say," said Madame to Miss Par- 
malee, as Miss Martha tripped wearil}' down the 
front walk — "I must sav, of all the educated women 

153 



THE COPY-CAT 

who have really been in the world, she is the strang- 
est. You and I have done nothing but ask inane 
questions, and she has sat waiting for them, and 
chirped back like a canary. I am simply worn out." 

"So am I," sighed Miss Parmalee. 

But neither of them was so worn out as poor 
Miss Martha, anticipating her cousin's reproaches. 
However, her wonted silence and reticence stood 
her in good stead, for he merely asked, after httle 
Lucy had gone to bed : 

"Well, what did Madame say about Lucy's pro- 
posals ?" 

"She did not say anything," replied Martha. 

"Did she promise it would not occur again?" 

"She did not promise, but I don't think it will." 

The financial page was unusually thrilling that 
night, and Cyril Rose, who had come to think rather 
lightly of the affair, remarked, absent-mindedly: 
"Well, I hope it does not occur again. I cannot have 
such ridiculous ideas put into the child's head. If 
it does, we get a governess for her and take her away 
from Madame's." Then he resumed his reading, 
and Martha, guilty but relieved, went on with her 
knitting. 

It was late spring then, and little Lucy had at- 
tended Madame's school several months, and her 
popularity had never waned. A picnic was planned 
to Dover's Grove, and the romantic little girls had 
insisted upon a May queen, and Lucy was unani- 
mously elected. The pupils of Madame's school went 
to the picnic in the manner known as a "straw- 
ride." Miss Parmalee sat with them, her feet 

IS4 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

uncomfortably tucked under her. She was the 
youngest of the teachers, and could not evade the 
duty. Madame and Miss Acton headed the pro- 
cession, sitting comfortably in a victoria driven by 
the colored man Sam, who was employed about the 
school. Dover's Grove was six miles from the vil- 
lage, and a favorite spot for picnics. The victoria 
rolled on ahead; Madame carried a black parasol, 
for the sun was on her side and the day very warm. 
Both ladies wore thin, dark gowns, and both felt 
the languor of spring. 

The straw-wagon, laden with children seated upon 
the golden trusses of straw, looked like a wagon- 
load of blossoms. Fair and dark heads, rosy faces 
looked forth in charming clusters. They sang, they 
chattered. It made no difference to them that it 
was not the season for a straw-ride, that the trusses 
were must}'. They inhaled the fragrance of blooming 
boughs under which they rode, and were quite ob- 
livious to all discomfort and unpleasantness. Poor 
Miss Parmalee, with her feet going to sleep, sneezing 
from time to time from the odor of the old straw, 
did not obtain the full beauty of the spring day. 
She had protested against the straw-ride. 

"The children really ought to wait until the season 
for such things," she had told Madame, quite boldly; 
and Madame had replied that she was well aware 
of it, but the children wanted something of the sort, 
and the hay was not cut, and straw, as it happened, 
was more easih' procured. 

"It may not be so very musty," said Madame; 
"and you know, my dear, straw is clean, and I 



THE COPY-CAT 

am sorry, but you do seem to be the one to ride 
with the children on the straw, because" — Madame 
dropped her voice — "you are really younger, you 
know, than either Miss Acton or I." 

Poor Miss Parmalee could almost have dispensed 
with her few years of superior youth to have gotten 
rid of that straw-rride. She had no parasol, and the 
sun beat upon her head, and the noise of the children 
got horribly on her nerves. Little Lucy was her one 
alleviation. Little Lucy sat in the midst of the 
boisterous throng, perfectly still, crowned with her 
garland of leaves and flowers, her sweet, pale little 
face calmly observant. She was the high light of 
Madame's school, the effect which made the 
whole. All the others looked at little Lucy, they 
talked to her, they talked at her; but she remained 
herself unmoved, as a high light should be. "Dear 
little soul," Miss Parmalee thought. She also 
thought that it was a pity that little Lucy could 
not have worn a white frock in her character as 
Queen of the May, but there she was mistaken. The 
blue was of a peculiar shade, of a very soft material, 
and nothing could have been prettier. Jim Patterson 
did not often look away from little Lucy; neither 
did Arnold Carruth; neither did Bubby Harvey; 
neither did Johnny Trumbull; neither did Lily 
Jennings; neither did many others. 

Amelia Wheeler, however, felt a little jealous as 
she watched Lily. She thought Lily ought to have 
been queen; and she, while she did not dream of 
competing with incomparable little Lucy, wished 
Lily would not always look at Lucy with such wor- 

156 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

shipful admiration. Amelia was inconsistent. She 
knew that she herself could not aspire to being an 
object of worship, but the state of being a nonentity 
for Lily was depressing. "Wonder if I jumped out 
of this old wagon and got killed if she would mind 
one bit?" she thought, tragically. But Amelia did 
not jump. She had tragic impulses, or rather im- 
aginations of tragic impulses, but she never carried 
them out. It was left for little Lucy, flower-crowned 
and calmly sweet and gentle under honors, to be 
guilty of a tragedy of which she never dreamed. 
For that was the day when little Lucy was lost. 

When the picnic was over, when the children were 
climbing into the straw-wagon and Madame and 
Miss Acton were genteely disposed in the victoria, 
a lamentable cry arose. Sam drew his reins tight 
and rolled his inquiring eyes around; Madame and 
Miss Acton leaned far out on either side of the vic- 
toria. 

"Oh, what is it?" said Madame. "My dear Miss 
Acton, do pray get out and see what the trouble is. 
I begin to feel a little faint." 

In fact, Madame got her cut-glass smelling-bottle 
out of her bag and began to sniff vigorously. Sam 
gazed backward and paid no attention to her. Ma- 
dame alwa3^s felt faint when anything unexpected 
occurred, and smelled at the pretty bottle, but she 
never fainted. 

Miss Acton got out, lifting her nice skirts clear 
of the dusty wheel, and she scuttled back to the up- 
roarious straw-wagon, showing her slender ankles 
and trimly shod feet. Miss Acton was a very wiry, 

IS7 



THE COPY-CAT 

dainty woman, full of nervous energy. When she 
reached the straw-wagon Miss Parmalee was climb- 
ing out, assisted by the driver. Miss Parmalee 
was very pale and visibly tremulous. The children 
were all shrieking in dissonance, so it was quite 
impossible to tell what the burden of their tale of 
woe was; but obviously something of a tragic na- 
ture had happened. 

"What is the matter.?" asked Miss Acton, tee- 
tering like a humming-bird with excitement. 

"Little Lucy — " gasped Miss Parmalee. 

"What about her.?" 

"She isn't here." 

"Where is she.?" 

"We don't know. We just missed her." 

Then the cry of the children for little Lucy Rose, 
although sadly wrangled, became intelligible. Ma- 
dame came, holding up her silk skirt and sniffing at 
her smelling-bottle, and everybody asked ques- 
tions of everybody else, and nobody knew any satis- 
factory answers. Johnny Trumbull was confident 
that he was the last one to see little Lucy, and so 
were Lily Jennings and Amelia Wheeler, and so 
were Jim Patterson and Bubby Harvey and Arnold 
Carruth and Lee Westminster and many others; 
but when pinned down to the actual moment 
everybody disagreed, and only one thing was cer- 
tain — little Lucy Rose was missing. 

"What shall I say to her father?" moaned Ma- 
dame. 

"Of course, we shall find her before we say any- 
thing," returned Miss Parmalee, who was sure to 

158 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

rise to an emergency. Madame sank helpless be- 
fore one. "You had better go and sit mider that 
tree (Sam, take a cushion out of tlie carriage for 
Madame) and keep quiet; then Sam must drive 
to the \-ilIage and gi^ e the alarm, and the straw- 
wagon had better go, too; and tlie rest of us will 
hunt by threes, three always keeping together. Re- 
member, children, three of you keep together, and, 
whatever you do, be sure and do not separate. We 
cannot have another lost." 

It seemed ver}" sound ad\"ice. Madame, pale and 
frightened, sat on the cushion under the tree and 
sniffed at her smelling-bottle, and the rest scattered 
and searched the grove and surrounding underbrush 
thoroughl\". But it was sunset when the groups 
returned to Madame under her tree, and the straw- 
wagon with excited people was back, and the %nctoria 
with Lucy's father and the rector and his wife, and 
Dr. Trumbull in his bugg}', and other carriages fast 
arri\"ing. Poor Miss Martha Rose had been out 
calling when she heard the news, and she was walk- 
ing to the scene of acrion. The ^^ctoria in w^hich 
her cousin was seated left her in a cloud of dust. 
Cjiil Rose had not noticed the mincing figure with 
the card-case and the parasol. 

The \411age searched for litde Luc}" Rose, but it 
was Jim Parrerson who found her, and in the most 
unlikely of places. A forlorn pair with a multi- 
plicity of forlorn children lived in a txmihle-down 
house about half a mile from the grove. The man's 
name was Silas Thomas, and his wife's was Sarah. 
Poor Sarah had lost a large part of the small wit she 



THE COPY-CAT 

had originally owned several years before, when her 
youngest daughter, aged four, died. All the babies 
that had arrived since had not consoled her for the 
death of that little lamb, by name Viola May, nor 
restored her full measure of under-wit. Poor Sarah 
Thomas had spied adorable little Lucy separated 
from her mates by chance for a few minutes, pick- 
ing wild flowers, and had seized her in forcible but 
loving arms and carried her home. Had Lucy not 
been such a silent, docile child, it could never have 
happened; but she was a mere little limp thing in 
the grasp of the over-loving, deprived mother who 
thought she had gotten back her own beloved Viola 
May. 

When Jim Patterson, big-eyed and pale, looked 
in at the Thomas door, there sat Sarah Thomas, a 
large, unkempt, wild-visaged, but gentle creature, 
holding little Lucy and cuddling her, while Lucy, 
shrinking away as far as she was able, kept her big, 
dark eyes of wonder and fear upon the woman's 
face. And all around were clustered the Thomas 
children, unkempt as their mother, a gentle but 
degenerate brood, all of them believing what their 
mother said. Viola May had come home again._ 
Silas Thomas was not there; he was trudging slowly 
homeward from a job of wood-cutting. Jim saw 
only the mother, little Lucy, and that poor little 
flock of children gazing in wonder and awe. Jim 
rushed in and faced Sarah Thomas. "Give me 
little Lucy!" said he, as fiercely as any man. But 
he reckoned without the unreasoning love of a 
mother. Sarah only held little Lucy faster, and the 

1 60 




\ lOLA MAV HAD LOME HOME AGAIN 



LITTLE LUCY ROSE 

poor litde girl rolled appealing ejes at him over that 
brawn)-, grasping ann of aflFection. 

Jim raced for help, and it was not long before it 
came. Little Luc}' rode home in the victoria, seated 
in Sally Patterson's lap. "Mother, you take her," 
Jim had pleaded; and Sally, in the face and e}es of 
Madame, had gathered the little trembling crea- 
ture into her arms. In her heart she had not much 
of an opinion of any woman who had allowed such 
a darling httle girl out of her sight for a moment. 
Madame accepted a seat in another carriage and rode 
home, explaining and sniffing and inwardi}' resolving 
never again to have a straw-ride. 

Jim stood on the step of the ^^ctoria all the way 
home. They passed poor Miss Martha Rose, still 
faring toward the grove, and nobody noticed her, 
for the second time. She did not turn back until 
the straw-wagon, which formed the tail of the little 
procession, reached her. That she halted with mad 
waves of her parasol, and, when told that little Lucy 
was found, refused a seat on the straw because she 
did not wish to rumple her best gown and turned 
about and fared home again. 

The rector}- was reached before Cyril Rose's 
house, and Cyril yielded gratefully to Sally Patter- 
son's proposition that she take the little girl with 
her, give her dinner, see that she was washed and 
brushed and freed from possible contamination from 
the Thomases, who were not a cleanly lot, and later 
brought home in the rector's carriage. However, 
little Luc}- stayed all night at the rectorj-. She had 
a bath; her lovely, misty hair was brushed; she 
11 i6i 



THE COPY-CAT 

was fed and petted; and finally Sally Patterson 
telephoned for permission to keep her overnight. 
By that time poor Martha had reached home and 
was busily brushing her best dress. 

After dinner, little Lucy, very happy and quite 
restored, sat in Sally Patterson's lap on the veranda, 
while Jim hovered near. His innocent boy-love 
made him feel as if he had wings. But his wings 
only bore him to failure, before an earlier and 
mightier force of love than his young heart could 
yet compass for even such a darling as little Lucy. 
He sat on the veranda step and gazed eagerly and 
rapturously at little Lucy on his mother's lap, and 
the desire to have her away from other loves came 
over him. He saw the fireflies dancing in swarms 
on the lawn, and a favorite sport of the children of 
the village occurred to him. 

"Say, little Lucy," said Jim. 

Little Lucy looked up with big, dark eyes under 
her mist of hair, as she nestled against Sally Patter- 
son's shoulder. 

"Say, let's chase fireflies, little Lucy." 

"Do you want to chase fireflies with Jim, darling?" 
asked Sally. 

Little Lucy nestled closer. "I would rather stay 
with you," said she in her meek flute of a voice, 
and she gazed up at Sally with the look which she 
might have given the mother she had lost. 

Sally kissed her and laughed. Then she reached 
down a fond hand and patted her boy's head. 
"Never mind, Jim," said Sally. "Mothers have to 
come first." 



NOBLESSE 



NOBLESSE 

MARGARET LEE encountered in her late middle 
age the rather singular strait of being entirely 
alone in the world. She was unmarried, and as 
far as relatives were concerned, she had none except 
those connected with her by ties not of blood, but by 
marriage. 

Margaret had not married when her flesh had been 
comparative; later, when it had become superlative, 
she had no opportunities to marry. Life would have 
been hard enough for Margaret under any circum- 
stances, but it was especially hard, lining, as she did, 
with her father's stepdaughter and that daughter's 
husband. 

Margaret's stepmother had been a child in spite of 
her two marriages, and a very silly, although pretty 
child. TTie daughter, Camille, was like her, although 
not so pretty, and the man whom Camille had mar- 
ried was what Margaret had been taught to regard 
as "common." His business pursuits were irregular 
and partook of myster>\ He always smoked ciga- 
rettes and chewed gum. He wore loud shirts and a 
diamond scarf-pin which had upon him the appear- 
ance of stolen goods. The gem had belonged to 
Margaret's own mother, but when Camille expressed 
a desire to present it to Jack Desmond, Margaret 

i6s 



THE COPY-CAT 

had yielded with no outward hesitation, but after- 
ward she wept miserably over its loss when alone in 
her room. The spirit had gone out of Margaret, 
the little which she had possessed. She had always 
been a gentle, sensitive creature, and was almost 
helpless before the wishes of others. 

After all, it had been a long time since Margaret 
had been able to force the ring even upon her little 
finger, but she had derived a small pleasure from 
the reflection that she owned it in its faded velvet 
box, hidden under laces in her top bureau drawer. 
She did not like to see it blazing forth from the tie 
of this very ordinary young man who had married 
Camille. Margaret had a gentle, high-bred contempt 
for Jack Desmond, but at the same time a vague 
fear of him. Jack had a measure of unscrupulous 
business shrewdness, which spared nothing and no- 
body, and that in spite of the fact that he had not 
succeeded. 

Margaret owned the old Lee place, which had been 
magnificent, but of late years the expenditures had 
been reduced and it had deteriorated. The conserva- 
tories had been closed. There was only one horse 
in the stable. Jack had bought him. He was a worn- 
out trotter with legs carefully bapdaged. Jack drove 
him at reckless speed, not considering those slender, 
braceleted legs. Jack had a racing-gig, and when 
in it, with striped coat, cap on one side, cigarette in 
mouth, lines held taut, skimming along the roads in 
clouds of dust, he thought himself the man and true 
sportsman which he was not. Some of the old Lee 
silver had paid for that waning trotter. 

i66 



NOBLESSE 

Camille adored Jack, and cared for no associations, 
no society, for which he was not suited. Before the 
trotter was bought she told Margaret that the kind 
of dinners which she was able to give in Fairhill were 
awfully slow. "If we could afford to have some 
men out from the cit}', some nice fellers that Jack 
knows, it would be worth while," said she, "but 
we have grown so hard up we can't do a thing to 
make it worth their while. Those men haven't got 
any use for a back-number old place like this. We 
can't take them round in autos, nor give them a 
chance at cards, for Jack couldn't pay if he lost, 
and Jack is awful honorable. We can't have the 
right kind of folks here for any fun. I don't propose 
to ask the rector and his wife, and old Mr. Harvey, 
or people like the Leaches." 

"The Leaches are a very good old family," said 
Margaret, feebly. 

"I don't care for good old families when they are 
so slow," retorted Camille. "The fellers we could 
have here, if we were rich enough, come from fine 
families, but they are up-to-date. It's no use hang- 
ing on to old silver dishes we never use and that I 
don't intend to spoil my hands shining. Poor Jack 
don't have much fun, anyway. If he wants that 
trotter — ^he says it's going dirt cheap — I think it's 
mean he can't have it, instead of your hanging on to 
a lot of out-of-style old silver; so there." 

Two generations ago there had been French blood 
in Camille's family. She put on her clothes beauti- 
fully; she had a dark, rather fine-featured, alert lit- 
tle face, which gave a wrong impression, for she was 

167 



THE COPY-CAT 

essentially vulgar. Sometimes poor Margaret Lee 
wished that Camille had been definitely vicious, if 
only she might be possessed of more of the charac- 
teristics of breeding. Camille so irritated Margaret 
in those somewhat abstruse traits called sensibilities 
that she felt as if she were living with a sort of 
spiritual nutmeg-grater. Seldom did Camille speak 
that she did not jar Margaret, although uncon- 
sciously. Camille meant to be kind to the stout 
woman, whom she pitied as far as she was capable 
of pitying without understanding. She realized that 
it must be horrible to be no longer young, and so 
stout that one was fairly monstrous, but how horrible 
she could not with her mentality conceive. Jack also 
meant to be kind. He was not of the brutal — that is, 
intentionally brutal — type, but he had a shrewd 
eye to the betterment of himself, and no realization 
of the torture he inflicted upon those who opposed 
that betterment. 

For a long time matters had been worse than usual 
financially in the Lee house. The sisters had been 
left in charge of the sadly dwindled estate, and had 
depended upon the judgment, or lack of judgment, 
of Jack. He approved of taking your chances and 
striking for larger income. The few good old grand- 
father securities had been sold, and wild ones from 
the very jungle of commerce had been substituted. 
Jack, like most of his type, while shrewd, was as 
credulous as a child. He lied himself, and expected 
all men to tell him the truth. Camille at his bidding 
mortgaged the old place, and Margaret dared not 
oppose. Taxes were not paid ; interest was not paid ; 

i68 



NOBLESSE 

credit was exhausted. Then the house was put up 
at public auction, and brought little more than suffi- 
cient to pay the creditors. Jack took the balance 
and staked it in a few games of chance, and of course 
lost. The weary trotter stumbled one day and had 
to be shot. Jack became desperate. He frightened 
Camille. He was suddenly morose. He bade Ca- 
mille pack, and Margaret also, and they obeyed. 
Camille stowed away her crumpled finery in the 
bulging old trunks, and Margaret folded daintily her 
few remnants of past treasures. She had an old silk 
gown or two, which resisted with their rich honesty 
the inroads of time, and a few pieces of old lace, 
which Camille vmderstood no better than she under- 
stood their owner. 

Then Margaret and the Desmonds went to the 
city and lived in a horrible, tawdry little flat in 
a tawdry locality. Jack roared with bitter mirth 
when he saw poor Margaret forced to enter her tiny 
room sidewise; Camille laughed also, although she 
chided Jack gently. "Mean of you to make fun of 
poor Margaret, Jacky dear," she said. 

For a few weeks Margaret's life in that flat was 
horrible; then it became still worse. Margaret near- 
ly filled with her weary, ridiculous bulk her little 
room, and she remained there most of the time, 
although it was sunny and noisy, its one window 
giving on a courtyard strung with clothes-lines and 
teeming with boisterous life. Camille and Jack went 
trolley-riding, and made shift to entertain a little, 
merry but questionable people, who gave them 
passes to vaudeville and entertained in their turn 

169 



THE COPY-CAT 

until the small hours. Unquestionably these peo- 
ple suggested to Jack Desmond the scheme which 
spelled tragedy to Margaret. 

She always remembered one little dark man with 
keen eyes who had seen her disappearing through 
her door of a Sunday night when all these gay, be- 
draggled birds were at liberty and the fun ran high. 
"Great Scott!" the man had said, and Margaret had 
heard him demand of Jack that she be recalled. 
She obeyed, and the man was introduced, also the 
other members of the party. Margaret Lee stood 
in the midst of this throng and heard their repressed 
titters of mirth at her appearance. Everybody 
there was in good humor with the exception of Jack, 
who was still nursing his bad luck, and the little 
dark man, whom Jack owed. The eyes of Jack and 
the little dark man made Margaret cold with a ter- 
ror of something, she knew not what. Before that 
terror the shame and mortification of her exhibition 
to that merry company was of no import. 

She stood among them, silent, immense, clad in 
her dark purple silk gown spread over a great hoop- 
skirt. A real lace collar lay softly over her enormous, 
billowing shoulders; real lace ruffles lay over her 
great, shapeless hands. Her face, the delicacy of 
whose features was veiled with flesh, flushed and 
paled. Not even flesh could subdue the sad brill- 
iancy of her dark-blue eyes, fixed inward upon her 
own sad state, unregardful of the company. She 
made an indefinite murmur of response to the saluta- 
tions given her, and then retreated. She heard the 
roar of laughter after she had squeezed through the 

170 



NOBLESSE 

door of her room. Then she heard eager conversa- 
tion, of which she did not catch the real import, but 
which terrified her with chance expressions. She 
was quite sure that she was the subject of that eager 
discussion. She was quite sure that it boded her 
no good. 

In a few days she knew the worst; and the worst 
was beyond her utmost imaginings. This was be- 
fore the da^s of moving-picture shows; it was the 
day of humiliating spectacles of deformities, when 
invenrions of amusements for the people had not 
progressed. It was the day of exhibitions of sad 
freaks of nature, calculated to provoke tears rather 
than laughter in the healthy-minded, and poor Mar- 
garet Lee was a chosen victim. Camille informed 
her in a few words of her fate. Camille was sorry 
for her, although not in the least understanding why 
she was sorrt'. She realized dimly that INIargaret 
would be distressed, but she was unable from her 
narrow point of view to comprehend fully the whole 
traged}-. 

"Jack has gone broke," stated Camille. "He 
owes Bill Stark a pile, and he can't pay a cent of it; 
and Jack's sense of honor about a poker debt is 
about the biggest thing in his character. Jack has 
got to pay. And Bill has a httle circus, going to 
travel all summer, and he's offered big money for 
you. Jack can pay Bill what he owes him, and well 
have enough to hve on, and have lots of fun going 
around. You hadn't ought to make a fuss about it." 

Margaret, pale as death, stared at the girl, pertly 
slim, and common and pretty, who stared back 

171 



THE COPY-CAT 

laughingly, although still with the glimmer of un- 
comprehending pity in her black eyes. 

"What does — he — want — me — for?" gasped 
Margaret. 

"For a show, because you are so big," replied 
Camille. "You will make us all rich, Margaret. 
Ain't it nice?" 

Then Camille screamed, the shrill raucous scream 
of the women of her type, for Margaret had fallen 
back in a dead faint, her immense bulk inert in her 
chair. Jack came running in alarm. Margaret had 
suddenly gained value in his shrewd eyes. He was 
as pale as she. 

Finally Margaret raised her head, opened her 
miserable eyes, and regained her consciousness of 
herself and what lay before her. There was no course 
open but submission. She knew that from the first. 
All three faced destitution; she was the one financial 
asset, she and her poor flesh. She had to face it, 
and with what dignity she could muster. 

Margaret had great piety. She kept constantly 
before her mental vision the fact in which she be- 
lieved, that the world which she found so hard, and 
which put her to unspeakable torture, was not all. 

A week elapsed before the wretched little show 
of which she was to be a member went on the road, 
and night after night she prayed. She besieged her 
God for strength. She never prayed for respite. 
Her realization of the situation and her lofty reso- 
lution prevented that. The awful, ridiculous com- 
bat was before her; there was no evasion; she prayed 
only for the strength which leads to victory. 

172 



NOBLESSE 

However, when the time came, it was all worse 
than she had imagined. How could a woman gently 
born and bred conceive of the horrible ignominy of 
such a life ? She was dragged hither and 3^on, to this 
and that little town. She traveled through swelter- 
ing heat on jolting trains; she slept in tents; she 
lived — she, Margaret Lee — on terms of equality 
with the common and the vulgar. Daily her absurd 
unwieldiness was exhibited to crowds screaming with 
laughter. Even her faith wavered. It seemed to her 
that there was nothing for evermore beyond those 
staring, jeering faces of silly mirth and delight at 
sight of her, seated in two chairs, clad in a pink 
spangled dress, her vast shoulders bare and 
sparkling with a tawdry necklace, her great, bare 
arms covered with brass bracelets, her hands in- 
cased in short, white kid gloves, over the fingers 
of which she wore a number of rings — stage prop- 
erties. 

Margaret became a horror to herself. At times 
it seemed to her that she was in the way of fairly 
losing her own identit}'. It mattered little that 
Camille and Jack were verj- kind to her, that they 
showed her the nice things which her terrible earn- 
ings had enabled them to have. She sat in her two 
chairs — ^the two chairs proved a most successful 
advertisement — ^with her two kid-cushiony hands 
clenched in her pink spangled lap, and she suffered 
agony of soul, which made her inner self stem and 
terrible, behind that great pink mask of face. And 
nobody realized until one sultr}' day when the show 
opened at a village in a pocket of green hills — indeed, 

173 



THE COPY-CAT 

its name was Greenhill — and Sydney Lord went to 
see it. 

Margaret, who had schooled herself to look upon 
her audience as if they were not, suddenly compre- 
hended among them another soul who understood 
her own. She met the eyes of the man, and a won- 
derful comfort, as of a cool breeze blowing over the 
face of clear water, came to her. She knew that the 
man understood. She knew that she had his fullest 
sympathy. She saw also a comrade in the toils of 
comic tragedy, for Sydney Lord was in the same case. 
He was a mountain of flesh. As a matter of fact, 
had he not been known in Greenhill and respected 
as a man of weight of character as well as of body, 
and of an old family, he would have rivaled Mar- 
garet. Beside him sat an elderly woman, sweet- 
faced, slightly bent as to her slender shoulders, as if 
with a chronic attitude of submission. She was 
Sydney's widowed sister, Ellen Waters. She lived 
with her brother and kept his house, and had no 
will other than his. 

Sydney Lord and his sister remained when the rest 
of the audience had drifted out, after the privileged 
hand-shakes with the queen of the show. Every 
time a coarse, rustic hand reached familiarly after 
Margaret's, Sydney shrank. 

He motioned his sister to remain seated when 
he approached the stage. Jack Desmond, who 
had been exploiting Margaret, gazed at him with 
admiring curiosity. Sydney waved him away 
with a commanding gesture. "I wish to speak to 
her a moment. Pray leave the tent," he said, 

174 



NOBLESSE 

and Jack obeyed. People always obeyed Sydney 
Lord. 

Sydney stood before Margaret, and he saw the 
clear crystal, which was herself, within all the flesh, 
clad in tawdry raiment, and she knew that he saw it. 

"Good God!" said Sidney, "you are a lady!" 

He continued to gaze at her, and his eyes, large 
and brown, became blurred; at the same time his 
mouth tightened. 

"How came yon to be in such a place as this? ' 
demanded Sydney. He spoke almost as if he were 
angry with her. 

Margaret explained briefly. 

"It is an outrage," declared Sydney. He said 
it, however, rather absently. He was reflecting. 
"Where do you live?" he asked. 

"Here." 

"You mean — ?" 

"They make up a bed for me here, after the people 
have gone." 

"And I suppose you had — before this — a com- 
fortable house." 

"The house which my grandfather Lee owned, 
the old Lee mansion-house, before we went to the 
city. It was a very fine old Colonial house, " ex- 
plained Margaret, in her finely modulated voice. 

"And you had a good room ?" 

"The southeast chamber had always been mine. 
It was very large, and the furniture was old Spanish 
mahogany." 

"And now — " said S\'dney. 

"Yes," said Margaret. She looked at him, and 

175 



THE COPY-CAT 

her serious blue eyes seemed to see past him. "It 
will not last," she said. 

"What do you mean?" 

"I try to learn a lesson. I am a child in the school 
of God. My lesson is one that always ends in peace." 

"Good God!" said Sydney. 

He motioned to his sister, and Ellen approached 
in a frightened fashion. Her brother could do no 
wrong, but this was the unusual, and alarmed her. 

"This lady—" began Sydney. 

"Miss Lee," said Margaret. "I was never mar- 
ried. I am Miss Margaret Lee." 

"This," said Sydney, "is my sister Ellen, Mrs. 
Waters. Ellen, I wish you to meet Miss Lee." 

Ellen took into her own Margaret's hand, and said 
feebly that it was a beautiful day and she hoped 
Miss Lee found Greenhill a pleasant place to — visit. 

Sydney moved slowly out of the tent and found 
Jack Desmond. He was standing near with Camille, 
who looked her best in a pale-blue summer silk and 
a black hat trimmed with roses. Jack and Camille 
never really knew how the great man had managed, 
but presently Margaret had gone away with him 
and his sister. 

Jack and Camille looked at each other. 

"Oh, Jack, ought you to have let her go?" said 
Camille. 

"What made you let her go?" asked Jack. 

"I — don't know. I couldn't say anything. That 
man has a tremendous way with him. Goodness!" 

"He is all right here in the place, anyhow," said 
Jack. "They look up to him. He is a big-bug here. 

176 



NOBLESSE 

Comes of a family like Margaret's, though he hasn't 
got much money. Some chaps were braggin' that 
they had a bigger show than her right here, and I 
found out." 

"Suppose," said Camille, "Margaret does not 
come back?" 

"He could not keep her without bein' arrested," 
declared Jack, but he looked uneasy. He had, how- 
ever, looked uneasy for some time. The fact was, 
Margaret had been very gradually losing weight. 
Moreover, she was not well. That very night, after 
the show was over. Bill Stark, the littie dark man, 
had a talk with the Desmonds about it. 

"Truth is, before long, if you don't look out, you'll 
have to pad her," said Bill; "and giants don't 
amount to a row of pins after that begins." 

Camille looked worried and sulky. "She ain't 
very well, anjhow," said she. "I ain't going to 
kill Margaret." 

"It's a good thing she's got a chance to have a 
night's rest in a house," said Bill Stark. 

"The fat man has asked her to stay with him and 
his sister while the show is here," said Jack. 

"The sister in\'ited her," said Camille, with a 
little stiffness. She was common, but she had lived 
with Lees, and her mother had married a Lee. She 
knew what was due Margaret, and also due herself. 

"The truth is," said Camille, "this is an awful sort 
of life for a woman like Margaret. She and her 
folks were never used to anything like it." 

"Why didn't you make your beauty husband 
hustle and take care of her and you, then?" de- 

12 ^n 



THE COPY-CAT 

manded Bill, who admired Camille, and disliked her 
because she had no eyes for him. 

"My husband has been unfortunate. He has 
done the best he could," responded Camille. "Come, 
Jack; no use talking about it any longer. Guess 
Margaret will pick up. Come along. I'm tired out." 

That night Margaret Lee slept in a sweet chamber 
' with muslin curtains at the windows, in a massive 
old mahogany bed, much like hers which had been 
sacrificed at an auction sale. The bed-linen was 
linen, and smelled of lavender. Margaret was too 
happy to sleep. She lay in the cool, fragrant sheets 
and was happy, and convinced of the presence of 
the God to whom she had prayed. All night Sydney 
Lord sat down-stairs in his book-walled sanctum 
and studied over the situation. It was a crucial one. 
The great psychological moment of Sydney Lord's 
life for knight-errantry had arrived. He studied 
the thing from every point of view. There was no 
romance about it. These were hard, sordid, tragic, 
ludicrous facts with which he had to deal. He knew 
to a nicety the agonies which Margaret suffered. 
He knew, because of his own capacity for sufferings 
of Uke stress. "And she is a woman and a lady," 
he said, aloud. 

If Sydney had been rich enough, the matter would 
have been simple. He could have paid Jack and 
Camille enough to quiet them, and Margaret could 
have lived with him and his sister and their two old 
servants. But he was not rich; he was even poor. 
The price to be paid for Margaret's liberty was a 
bitter one, but it was that or nothing. Sydney faced 

178 



NOBLESSE 

it. He looked about the room. To him the walls 
lined with the dull gleams of old books were lovely. 
There was an oil portrait of his mother over the 
mantel-shelf. The weather was warm now, and 
there was no need for a hearth fire, but how ex- 
quisitely home-like and dear that room could be 
when the snow drove outside and there was the leap 
of flame on the hearth ! Sydney was a scholar and 
a gentleman. He had led a gentle and sequestered 
life. Here in his native village there were none to 
gibe and sneer. The contrast of the traveling show 
would be as great for him as it had been for Margaret, 
but he was the male of the species, and she the 
female. Chivalry, racial, harking back to the begin- 
ning of nobility in the human, to its earliest dawn, 
fired Sydne\'. The pale daylight invaded the stud}. 
Sydney, as truly as an)- knight of old, had girded 
himself, and with no hope, no thought of reward, 
for the battle in the eternal service of the strong 
for the weak, which makes the true worth of the 
strong. 

There was only one way. Sydney Lord took it. 
His sister was spared the knowledge of the truth 
for a long while. When she knew, she did not lament; 
since Sydney had taken the course, it must be right. 
As for Margaret, not knowing the truth, she }"ielded. 
She was really on the verge of illness. Her spirit 
was of too fine a strain to enable her body to endure 
long. When she was told that she was to remain 
with Sydney's sister while Sydney went away on 
business, she made no objection. A wonderful sense 
of relief, as of wings of healing being spread under 

179 



THE COPY-CAT 

her despair, was upon her. Camille came to bid 
her good-by. 

"I hope you have a nice visit in this lovely house," 
said Camille, and kissed her. Camille was astute, 
and to be trusted. She did not betray Sydney's 
confidence. Sydney used a disguise — a dark wig 
over his partially bald head and a little make-up^ — 
and he traveled about with the show and sat on 
three chairs, and shook hands with the gaping crowd, 
and was curiously happy. It was discomfort; it 
was ignominy; it was maddening to support by the 
exhibition of his physical deformity a perfectly 
worthless young couple like Jack and Camille Des- 
mond, but it was all superbly ennobling for the man 
himself. 

Always as he sat on his three chairs, immense, 
grotesque — the more grotesque for his splendid dig- 
nity of bearing — there was in his soul of a gallant 
gentleman the consciousness of that other, whom 
he was shielding from a similar ordeal. Compassion 
and generosity, so great that they comprehended 
love itself and excelled its highest type, irradiated 
the whole being of the fat man exposed to the gaze 
of his inferiors. Chivalry, which rendered him almost 
god-like, strengthened him for his task. Sydney 
thought always of Margaret as distinct from her 
physical self, a sort of crystalline, angelic soul, with 
no encumbrance of earth. He achieved a purely 
spiritual conception of her. And Margaret, living 
again her gentle lady life, was likewise ennobled 
by a gratitude which transformed her. Always a 
clear and beautiful soul, she gave out new lights of 

1 80 



NOBLESSE 

character like a jewel in the sun. And she also 
thought of Sydney as distinct from his physical self. 
The consciousness of the two human beings, one of 
the other, was a consciousness as of two wonderful 
lines of good and beauty, moving for ever parallel, 
separate, and inseparable in an eternal harmony of 
spirit. 



w: 



CORONATION 



CORONATION 

TIM BENNET had never married. He had 
»-' passed middle life, and possessed considerable 
property. Susan Adkins kept house for him. She 
was a widow and a very distant relative. Jim had 
two nieces, his brother's daughters. One, Alma 
Beech er, was married; the other, Amanda, was not. 
The nieces had naively grasping views concerning 
their uncle and his property. They stated freely 
that they considered him unable to care for it; that 
a guardian should be appointed and the property 
be theirs at once. They consulted Lawyer Thomas 
Hopkinson with regard to it; they discoursed at 
length upon what they claimed to be an idiosyn- 
crasy of Jim's, denoting failing mental powers. 

"He keeps a perfect slew of cats, and has a coal 
fire for them in the woodshed all winter," said Amanda. 
"Why in thunder shouldn't he keep a fire in the 
woodshed if he wants to?" demanded Hopkinson. 
"I know of no law against it. And there isn't a 
law in the country regulating the number of cats a 
man can keep." Thomas Hopkinson, who was an 
old friend of Jim's, gave his prominent chin an up- 
ward jerk as he sat in his oflSce arm-chair before 
his clients. 

i8s 



THE COPY-CAT 

"There is something besides cats," said Alma. 

"What?" 

"He talks to himself." 

"What in creation do you expect the poor man to 
do? He can't talk to Susan Adkins about a blessed 
thing except tidies and pincushions. That woman 
hasn't a thought in her mind outside her soul's 
salvation and fancy-work. Jim has to talk once in 
a while to keep himself a man. What if he does 
talk to himself? I talk to myself. Next thing you will 
want to be appointed guardian over me, Amanda." 

Hopkinson was a bachelor, and Amanda flushed 
angrily. 

"He wasn't what I call even gentlemanly," she 
told Alma, when the two were on their way home. 

"I suppose Tom Hopkinson thought you were 
setting your cap at him," retorted Alma. She rel- 
ished the dignity of her married state, and enjoyed 
giving her spinster sister little claws when occasion 
called. However, Amanda had a temper of her own, 
and she could claw back. 

"You needn't talk," said she. "You only took 
Joe Beecher when you had given up getting anybody 
better. You wanted Tom Hopkinson yourself. I 
haven't forgotten that blue silk dress you got and 
wore to meeting. You needn't talk. You know 
you got that dress just to make Tom look at you, 
and he didn't. You needn't talk." 

"I wouldn't have married Tom Hopkinson if he 
had been the only man on the face of the earth," 
declared Alma with dignity; but she colored hotly. 

Amanda sniffed. "Well, as near as I can find out, 
1 86 




VOL" NEEDN T TALK. VOL" W ANTEL- TvM KOFKINSOX VOURJELF 



CORONATION 

Uncle Jim can go on talking to himself and keeping 
cats, and we can't do anything," said she. 

When the two women were home, they told Alma's 
husband, Joe Beecher, about their lack of success. 
They were quite heated with their walk and excite- 
ment. "I call it a shame," said Alma. "Anybody 
knows that poor Uncle Jim would be better off with 
a guardian." 

"Of course," said Amanda. "What man that 
had a grain of horse sense would do such a crazy 
thing as to keep a coal fire in a woodshed?" 

"For such a slew of cats, too," said Alma, nodding 
fiercely. 

Alma's husband, Joe Beecher, spoke timidly and 
undecidedly in the defense. "You know," he said, 
"that Mrs. Adkins wouldn't have those cats in the 
house, and cats mostly like to sit round where it's 
warm." 

His wife regarded him. Her nose wrinkled. "I 
suppose next thing you'll be wanting to have a cat 
round where it's warm, right under my feet, with 
all I have to do," said she. Her voice had an actual 
acidity of sound. 

Joe gasped. He was a large man with a constant 
expression of wondering inquiry. It was the expres- 
sion of his babyhood; he had never lost it, and it 
was an expression which revealed truly the state of 
his mind. Always had Joe Beecher wondered, first 
of all at finding himself in the world at all, then at 
the various happenings of existence. He probably 
wondered more about the fact of his marriage with 
Alma Bennet than anything else, although he never 

187 



THE COPY-CAT 

betrayed his wonder. He was always painfully 
anxious to please his wife, of whom he stood in 
awe. Now he hastened to reply: "Why, no. Alma; 
of course I won't." 

"Because," said Alma, "I haven't come to my 
time of life, through all the trials I've had, to be 
taking any chances of breaking my bones over any 
miserable, furry, four-footed animal that wouldn't 
catch a mouse if one run right under her nose." 

"I don't want any cat," repeated Joe, miserably. 
His fear and awe of the two women increased. 
When his sister-in-law turned upon him he fairly 
cringed. 

"Cats!" said Amanda. Then she sniffed. The 
sniff" was worse than speech. 

Joe repeated in a mumble that he didn't want 
any cats, and went out, closing the door softly after 
him, as he had been taught. However, he was en- 
tirely sure, in the depths of his subjugated masculine 
mind, that his wife and her sister had no legal au- 
thority whatever to interfere with their uncle's right 
to keep a hundred coal fires in his woodshed, for a 
thousand cats. He always had an inner sense of 
glee when he heard the two women talk over the 
matter. Once Amanda had declared that she did 
not believe that Tom Hopkinson knew much about 
law, znywzy. 

"He seems to stand pretty high," Joe ventured 
with the utmost mildness. 

"Yes, he does," admitted Alma, grudgingly. 

"It does not follow he knows law," persisted 
Amanda, "and it may follow that he likes cats. 



CORONATION 

There was that great Maltese tommy brushing round 
all the time we were in his office, but I didn't dare 
shoo him ofF for fear it might be against the law." 
Amanda laughed, a very disagreeable little laugh. 
Joe said nothing, but inwardly he chuckled. It was 
the cause of man with man. He realized a great, 
even affectionate, understanding of Jim. 

The da}' after his nieces had visited the lawyer's 
office, Jim was preparing to call on his friend Edward 
Hayward, the minister. Before leaving he looked 
carefully after the fire in the woodshed. The stove 
was large. Jim piled on the coal, regardless out- 
wardly that the housekeeper, Susan Adkins, had 
slammed the kitchen door to indicate her contempt. 
Inwardly Jim felt hurt, but he had felt hurt so long 
from the same cause that the sensation had become 
chronic, and was borne with a gentle patience. 
Moreover, there was something which troubled him 
more and was the reason for his contemplated call 
on his friend. He evened the coals on the fire with 
great care, and replenished from the pail in the ice- 
box the cats' saucers. There was a circle of clean 
white saucers around the stove. Jim owned many 
cats; counting the kittens, there were probably over 
twenty. Airs. Adkins counted them in the sixties. 
"Those sixty-seven cats," she said. 

Jim often gave ^way cats when he was confident 
of securing good homes, but supply exceeded the 
demand. Now and then tragedies took place in 
that woodshed. Susan Adkins came bravely to the 
front upon these occasions. Quite convinced was 
Susan Adkins that she had a good home, and it 

189 



THE COPY-CAT 

behooved her to keep it, and she did not in the least 
object to drowning, now and then, a few very young 
kittens. She did this with neatness and despatch 
while Jim walked to the store on an errand and was 
supposed to know nothing about it. There was 
simply not enough room in his woodshed for the 
accumulation of cats, although his heart could have 
held all. 

That day, as he poured out the milk, cats of all 
ages and sizes and colors purred in a softly padding 
multitude around his feet, and he regarded them 
with love. There were tiger cats, Maltese cats, black- 
and-white cats, black cats and white cats, tommies 
and females, and his heart leaped to meet the plead- 
ing mews of all. The saucers were surrounded. 
Little pink tongues lapped. "Pretty pussy! pretty 
pussy!" cooed Jim, addressing them in general. He 
put on his overcoat and hat, which he kept on a peg 
behind the door. Jim had an arm-chair in the wood- 
shed. He always sat there when he smoked; Susan 
Adkins demurred at his smoking in the house, which 
she kept so nice, and Jim did not dream of rebellion. 
He never questioned the right of a woman to bar 
tobacco smoke from a house. Before leaving he 
refilled some of the saucers. He was not sure that 
all of the cats were there; some might be afield, 
hunting, and he wished them to find refreshment 
when they returned. He stroked the splendid striped 
back of a great tiger tommy which filled his arm- 
chair. This cat was his special pet. He fastened the 
outer shed door with a bit of rope in order that it 
might not blow entirely open, and yet allow his 

190 



CORONATION 

feline friends to pass, should they choose. Then he 
went out. 

The day was clear, with a sharp breath of frost. 
The fields gleamed ^\-ith frost, ofiFering to the e\e a 
fine shimmer as of diamond-dust under the brilliant 
blue sk\-, overspread in places with a dapple of little 
white clouds. 

''White frost and mackerel sky; going to be falling 
weather," Jim said, aloud, as he went out of the 
\'ard, crunching tlie crisp grass under heel. 

Susan Adkins at a ^\'indow saw his lips moving. 
His talking to himself made her nervous, although it 
did not render her distrustful of his sanity. It was 
fortunate that Susan had not told Jim that she 
disliked his habit. In that case he would have 
deprived himself of that slight solace; he would not 
have dreamed of opposing Susan's wishes. Jim had 
a great pity for the nervous whims, as he regarded 
them, of women — a pity so intense and tender that 
it verged on respect and veneration. He passed his 
nieces' house on the wa}' to the minister's, and both 
were looking out of \\"indows and saw his lips moving. 

"There he goes, talking to himself like a crazy 
loon," said -\manda. 

Alma nodded. 

Jim went on, blissfuU}" unconscious. He talked 
in a quiet monotone; only now and then his voice 
rose; onh" now and then there were accompanj-ing 
gestures. Jim had a straight mile down the broad 
village street to walk before he reached the church 
and the parsonage beside it. 

Jim and the minister had been friends since boy- 

191 



THE COPY-CAT 

hood. They were graduates and classmates of the 
same college. Jim had had unusual educational ad- 
vantages for a man coming from a simple family. 
The front door of the parsonage flew open when Jim 
entered the gate, and the minister stood there 
smihng. He was a tall, thin man with a wide mouth, 
which either smiled charmingly or was set with 
severity. He was as brown and dry as a wayside 
weed which winter had subdued as to bloom but 
could not entirely prostrate with all its icy storms 
and compelling blasts. Jim, advancing eagerly tow- 
ard the warm welcome in the door, was a small 
man, and bent at that, but he had a handsome old 
face, with the rose of youth on the cheeks and the • 
light of youth in the blue eyes, and the quick changes 
of youth, before emotions, about the mouth. 

"Hullo, Jim!" cried Dr. Edward Hayward. Hay- 
ward, for a doctor of divinity, was considered some- 
what lacking in dignity at times; still, he was Dr. 
Hajrward, and the failing was condoned. More- 
over, he was a Hayward, and the Haywards had 
been, from the memory of the oldest inhabitant, the 
great people of the village. Dr. Hayward's house 
was presided over by his widowed cousin, a lady 
of enough dignity to make up for any lack of it in 
the minister. There were three servants, besides 
the old butler who had been Haywrard's attendant 
when he had been a young man in college. Village 
people were proud of their minister, with his degree 
and what they considered an imposing household 
retinue. 

Hayward led, and Jim followed, to the least pre- 
192 



CORONATION 

tentious room in the house — not the study proper, 
which was lofty, book-lined, and leather-furnished, 
curtained with broad sweeps of crimson damask, but 
a little shabby place back of it, accessible by a nar- 
row door. The little room was lined with shelves; 
they held few books, but a collection of queer and 
dusty things — strange weapons, minerals, odds and 
ends— which the minister loved and with which his 
lady cousin never interfered. 

"Louisa," Hajrward had told his cousin when she 
entered upon her post, "do as you like with the 
whole house, but let my little stud}- alone. Let it 
look as if it had been stirred up with a garden-rake 
— that little room is my territory, and no disgrace 
to you, my dear, if the dust rises in clouds at every 
step. 

Jim was as fond of the little room as his friend. 
He entered, and sighed a great sigh of satisfaction 
as he sank into the shabby, dusty hollow of a large 
chair before the hearth fire. Immediately a black 
cat leaped into his lap, gazed at him with green- 
jewel eyes, worked her paws, purred, settled into a 
coil, and slept. Jim lit his pipe and threw the match 
blissfully on the floor. Dr. Hayward set an electric 
coflFee-urn at its work, for the little room was a 
curious mixture of the comfortable old and the 
comfortable modern. 

"Sam shall serve our luncheon in here," he said, 
with a staid glee. 

Jim nodded happily. 

"Louisa will not mind," said Hayward. "She is 
precise, but she has a fine regard for the rights of the 
13 193 



THE COPY-CAT 

individual, which is most commendable." He seated 
himself in a companion chair to Jim's, lit his own 
pipe, and threw the match on the floor. Occasion- 
ally, when the ministef was out, Sam, without orders 
so to do, cleared the floor of matches. 

HajTward smoked and regarded his friend, who 
looked troubled despite his comfort. "What is it, 
Jim?" asked the minister at last. 

"I don't know how to do what is right for me to 
do," replied the little man, and his face, turned 
toward his friend, had the puzzled earnestness of a 
child. 

Hayward laughed. It was easily seen that his 
was the keener mind. In natural endowments 
there had never been equality, although there was 
great similarity of tastes. Jim, despite his education, 
often lapsed into the homely vernacular of which he 
heard so much. An involuntarily imitative man in 
externals was Jim, but essentially an original. Jim 
proceeded. 

"You know, Edward, I have never been one to 
complain," he said, with an almost boyish note 
of apology. 

"Never complained half enough; that's the trou- 
ble," returned the other. 

"Well, I overheard something Mis' Adkins said 
to Mis' Amos Trimmer the other afternoon. Mis' 
Trimmer was calling on Mis' Adkins. I couldn't 
help overhearing unless I went outdoors, and it 
was snowing and I had a cold. I wasn't listening." 

"Had a right to listen if you wanted to," declared 
Hayward, irascibly. 

194 



CORONATION 

"Well, I couldn't help it unless I went outdoors. 
Mis' Adkins she was in the kitchen making light- 
bread for supper, and Mis' Trimmer had sat right 
down there with her. Mis' Adkins's kitchen is as 
clean as a parlor, an}-wa\\ Mis' Adkins said to Mis' 
Trimmer, speaking of me — because Mis' Trimmer 
had just asked where I was and Mis' Adkins had 
said I was out in the woodshed sitting with the cats 
and smoking — Mis' Adkins said, 'He's just a door- 
mat, that's what he is.' Then Mis' Trimmer says, 
'The way he lets folks ride over him beats me.' 
Then Mis' Adkins says again: 'He's nothing but a 
door-mat. He lets everj'body that wants to just 
trample on him and grind their dust into him, and 
he acts real pleased and grateful."" 

Ha)^ward"s face flushed. "Did Mrs. Adkins men- 
tion that she was one of the people who used 3'ou 
for a door-mat?" he demanded. 

Jim threw back his head and laughed like a child, 
with the sweetest sense of unresentful humor. "Lord 
bless m}' soul, Edward," replied Jim, "I don't be- 
lieve she ever thought of that." 

"And at that very minute you, with a hard cold, 
were sitting out in that draughty shed smoking 
because she wouldn't allow )-ou to smoke in }'our 
own house! " 

"I don't mind that, Edward," said Jim, and 
laughed again. 

"Could vou see to read your paper out there, 
with only that little shed window? And don't you 
like to read your paper while you smoke:"' 

■'Oh ves," admitted Jim; "but my! I don't mind 
195 



THE COPY-CAT 

little things like that! Mis' Adkins is only a poor 
widow woman, and keeping my house nice and not 
having it smell of tobacco is all she's got. They can 
talk about women's rights — I feel as if they ought 
to have them fast enough, if they want them, poor 
things; a woman has a hard row to hoe, and will 
have, if she gets all the rights in creation. But I 
guess the rights they'd find it hardest to give up 
would be the rights to have men look after them 
just a little more than they look after other men, 
just because they are women. When I think of 
Annie Berry — the girl I was going to marry, you 
know, if she hadn't died — I feel as if I couldn't do 
enough for another woman. Lord! I'm glad to sit 
out in the woodshed and smoke. Mis' Adkins is 
pretty good-natured to stand all the cats." 

Then the coffee boiled, and HayTvard poured out 
some for Jim and himself. He had a little silver ser- 
vice at hand, and willow-ware cups and saucers. 
Presently Sam appeared, and Hayward gave orders 
concerning luncheon. 

"Tell Miss Louisa we are to have it served here," 
said he, "and mind, Sam, the chops are to be thick 
and cooked the way we like them; and don't forget 
the East India chutney, Sam." 

"It does seem rather a pity that you cannot have 
chutney at home with your chops, when you are so 
fond of it," remarked Ha3rward when Sam had gone. 

"Mis' Adkins says it will give me liver trouble, 
and she isn't strong enough to nurse." 

"So you have to eat her ketchup?" 

"Well, she doesn't put seasoning in it," admitted 
196 



CORONATION 

Jim. "But Mis' Adkins doesn't like seasoning her- 
self, and I don't mind." 

"And I know the chops are never cut thick, the 
way we like them." 

"Mis' Adkins likes her meat well done, and she 
can't get such thick chops well done, I suppose our 
chops are rather thin, but I don't mind." 

"Beefsteak and chops, both cut thin, and fried 
up like sole-leather. I know!" said Dr. Hayward, 
and he stamped his foot with unregenerate force. 

"I don't mind a bit, Edward." 

"You ought to mind, when it is your own house, 
and you buy the food and pay your housekeeper. 
It is an outrage!" 

"I don't mind, really, Edward." 

Dr. HayAvard regarded Jim with a curious ex- 
pression compounded of love, anger, and contempt. 
"Any more talk of legal proceedings?" he asked, 
brusquely. 

Jim flushed. "Tom ought not to tell of that." 

"Yes, he ought; he ought to tell it all over town. 
He doesn't, but he ought. It is an outrage! Here 
you have been all these jears supporting your 
nieces, and the}- are working awa}' like field-mice, 
burrowing under your generosity, trjing to get a 
chance to take action and appropriate your property 
and have 30U put under a guardian." 

"I don't mind a bit," said Jim; "but — " 

The other man looked inquiringly at him, and, 
seeing a pitiful working of his friend's face, he 
jumped up and got a little jar from a shelf. "We 
will drop the whole thing until we have had our 

197 



THE COPY-CAT 

chops and chutney," said he. "You are right; it is 
not worth minding. Here is a new brand of tobacco 
I want you to try. I don't half Hke it, myself, but 
you may." 

Jim, with a pleased smile, reached out for the 
tobacco, and the two men smoked until Sam brought 
the luncheon. It was well cooked and well served 
on an antique table. Jim was thoroughly happy. 
It was not until the luncheon was over and another 
pipe smoked that the troubled, perplexed expression 
returned to his face. 

"Now," said Hayward, "out with it!" 
"It is only the old affair about Alma and Amanda, 
but now it has taken on a sort of new aspect." 
"What do you mean by a new aspect?" 
"It seems," said Jim, slowly, "as if they were 
making it so I couldn't do for them." 

Hayward stamped his foot. "That does sound 
new," he said, dryly. "I never thought Alma 
Beecher or Amanda Bennet ever objected to have 
you do for them." 

"Well," said Jim, "perhaps they don't now, but 
they want me to do it in their own way. They 
don't want to feel as if I was giving and they taking; 
they want it to seem the other way round. You 
see, if I were to deed over my property to them, and 
then they allowance me, they would feel as if they 
were doing the giving." 

"Jim, you wouldn't be such a fool as that?" 
"No, I wouldn't," replied Jim, simply. "They 
wouldn't know how to take care of it, and Mis' 
Adkins would be left to shift for herself. Joe Beecher 

198 



CORONATION 

is real good-hearted, but he alwa}-s lost even' dollar 
he touched. JNo, there wouldn't be any sense in 
that. I don't mean to give in, but I do feel pretty 
well worked up over it." 

"What have they said to you." " 

Jim hesitated. 

"Out with It, now. One thing you ma}' be sure 
of: nothing that 3'ou can tell me will alter my opinion 
of }-our two nieces for the worse. As for poor Joe 
Beecher, there is no opinion, one way or the other. 
What did they say.^' 

Jim regarded his friend with a curiously sweet, 
far-off expression. "Edward, " he said, "sometimes 
I believe that the greatest thing a man's friends can 
do for him is to drive him into a comer with God; 
to be so unjust to him that they make him under- 
stand that God is all that mortal man is meant to 
have, and that is why he finds out that most people, 
especially the ones he does for, don't care for 
him." 

Haj-ward looked solemnly and tenderly at the 
other's almost rapt face, "li ou are right, I suppose, 
old man," said he; "but what did they dor ' 

"They called me in there about a week ago and 
gave me an awful talking to." 

"About what? " 

Jim looked at his friend with dignit}-. "They 
were two women talking, and they went into little 
matters not worth repeating," said he. "AH is — 
thev seemed to blame me for everything I had ever 
done for them, and for everything I had ever done, 
anvwa\'. The}' seemed to blame me for being bom 

199 



THE COPY-CAT 

and living, and, most of all, for doing anything for 
them." 

"It is an outrage!" declared Hayward. "Can't 
you see it?" 

"I can't seem to see anything plain about it," 
returned Jim, in a bewildered way. "I always sup- 
posed a man had to do something bad to be given 
a talking to; but it isn't so much that, and I don't 
bear any malice against them. They are only two 
women, and they are nervous. What worries me is, 
they do need things, and they can't get on and be 
comfortable unless I do for them; but if they are 
going to feel that way about it, it seems to cut me 
off from doing, and that does worry me, Edward." 

The other man stamped. "Jim Bennet," he said, 
"they have talked, and now I am going to." 

"You, Edward?" 

"Yes, I am. It is entirely true what those two 
women, Susan Adkins and Mrs. Trimmer, said about 
you. You are a door-mat, and you ought to be 
ashamed of yourself for it. A man should be a man, 
and not a door-mat. It is the worst thing in the 
world for people to walk over him and trample him. 
It does them much more harm than it does him. In 
the end the trampler is much worse off than the 
trampled upon. Jim Bennet, your being a door- 
mat may cost other people their souls' salvation. 
You are selfish in the grain to be a door-mat." 

Jim turned pale. His child-like face looked sud- 
denly old with his mental effort to grasp the other's 
meaning. In fact, he was a child — one of the little 
ones of the world — although he had lived the span 

200 



CORONATIOX 

of a man's life. Now one of the hardest problems of 
the elders of the world was presented to him. ''You 
mean — " he said, faintl}'. 

"I mean, Jim, that for the sake of other people, 
if not for j^our o^Tn sake, you ought to stop being 
a door-mat and be a man in this world of men. " 

"What do rou want me to do?" 

" I want vou to go straight to those nieces of 3'ours 
and tell them the truth. You know what 3"our 
wrongs are as well as I do. You know what those 
two women are as well as I do. The\' keep the letter 
of the Ten Commandments — that is right. They 
attend my church — that is right. The}- scour the 
outside of the platter until it is bright enough to 
blind those people who don't understand them; but 
inwardly they are pett3% ravening wolves of greed and 
ingratitude. Go and tell them; they don't know 
themselves. Show them what they are. It is your 
Christian duty." 

"You don't mean for me to stop doing for them:" 

"I certainly do mean just that — for a while, 
am-way." 

"They can't possibly get along, Edward; they 
will suffer." 

"Thev have a littie money, haven't they?" 

"Onh- a little in sa\"ings-bank. The interest pa3's 
their taxes." 

"And you gave them that?" 

Jim colored. 

"^'ery well, their taxes are paid for this year; 
let them use that money. They will not suffer, ex- 
cept in their feelings, and that is where they ought 



THE COPY-CAT 

to suffer. Man, you would spoil all the work of the 
Lord by your selfish tenderness toward sinners !" 

"They aren't sinners." 

"Yes, they are — spiritual sinners, the worst kind 
in the world. Now — " 

"You don't mean for me to go now?" 

"Yes, I do — now. If you don't go now you never 
will. Then, afterward, I want you to go home and 
sit in your best parlor and smoke, and have all your 
cats in there, too." 

Jim gasped. "But, Edward! Mis' Adkins— " 

"I don't care about Mrs. Adkins. She isn't as 
bad as the rest, but she needs her little lesson, 
too. 

"Edward, the way that poor woman works to 
keep the house nice — and she don't like the smell 
of tobacco smoke." 

"Never mind whether she likes it or not. You 
smoke." 

"And she don't like cats." 

"Never mind. Now you go." 

Jim stood up. There was a curious change in his 
rosy, child-like face. There was a species of quicken- 
ing. He looked at once older and more alert. His 
friend's words had charged him as with electricity. 
When he went down the street he looked taller. 

Amanda Bennet and Alma Beecher, sitting sewing 
at their street windows, made this mistake. 

"That isn't Uncle Jim," said Amanda. "That 
man is a head taller, but he looks a little like him.", 

"It can't be Uncle Jim," agreed Alma. Then 
both started. 

202 



CORONATION 

"It is Uncle Jim, and he is coming here," said 
Amanda. 

Jim entered. Nobody except himself, his nieces, 
and Joe Beecher ever knew exactly what happened, 
what was the aspect of the door-mat erected to 
human life, of the worm turned to menace. It must 
have savored of horror, as do all meek and down- 
trodden things when they gain, driven to bay, the 
strength to do battle. It must have savored of the 
god-like, when the man who had borne with patience, 
dignity, and sorrow for them the stings of lesser 
things because the}' were lesser things, at last arose 
and revealed himself superior, with a great height of 
the spirit, with the power to crush. 

When Jim stopped talking and went home, two 
pale, shocked faces of women gazed after him from 
the windows. Joe Beecher was sobbing like a child. 
Finally his wife turned her frightened face upon him, 
glad to have still some one to intimidate. 

"For goodness' sake, Joe Beecher, stop crying 
like a bab;-," said she, but she spoke in a queer whis- 
per, for her lips were stiff. 

Joe stood up and made for the door. 

"Where are you going?" asked his wife. 

"Going to get a job somewhere," rephed Joe, and 
went. Soon the women saw him driving a neighbor's 
cart up the street. 

"He's going to cart gravel for John Leach's new 
sidewalk!" gasped Alma. 

"Why don't you stop him?" cried her sister. 
"You can't have your husband driving a tip-cart 
for John Leach. Stop him. Alma!" 

203 



THE COPY-CAT 

"I can't stop him," moaned Alma. "I don't 
feel as if I could stop anything." 

Her sister gazed at her, and the same expression 
was on both faces, making them more than sisters 
of the flesh. Both saw before them a stern boundary- 
wall against which they might press in vain for the 
rest of their lives, and both saw the same sins of 
their hearts. 

Meantime Jim Bennet was seated in his best 
parlor and Susan Adkins was whispering to Mrs. 
Trimmer out in the kitchen. 

"I don't know whether he's gone stark, staring 
mad or not," whispered Susan, "but he's in the 
parlor smoking his worst old pipe, and that big 
tiger tommy is sitting in his lap, and he's let in all 
the other cats, and they're nosing round, and I 
don't dare drive 'em out. I took up the broom, then 
I put it away again. I never knew Mr. Bennet 
to act so. I can't think what's got into him." 

"Did he say anything.?" 

"No, he didn't say much of anything, but he said 
it in a way that made my flesh fairly creep. Says he, 
'As long as this is my house and my furniture and 
my cats. Mis' Adkins, I think I'll sit down in the 
parlor, where I can see to read my paper and smoke 
at the same time.' Then he holds the kitchen door 
open, and he calls, 'Kitty, kitty, kitty!' and that 
great tiger tommy comes in with his tail up, rubbing 
round his legs, and all the other cats followed after. 
I shut the door before these last ones got into the 
parlor." Susan Adkins regarded malevolently the 
three tortoise-shell cats of three generations and vari- 

204 



CORONATION 

ous stages of growth, one Maltese settled in a purring 
round of comfort with four kittens, and one perfectly 
black cat, which sat glaring at her with beryl-colored 
eyes. 

"That black cat looks evil," said Mrs. Trimmer. 

"Yes, he does. I don't know why I didn't drown 
him when he was a kitten." 

"Why didn't you drown all those Malty kittens?" 

"The old cat hid them awa}' until they were too 
big. Then he wouldn't let me. What do you sup- 
pose has come to him? Just smell that awful pipe!" 

" Men do take queer streaks every now and then," 
said Mrs. Trimmer. "My husband used to, and ^le 
was as good as they make 'em, poor man. He 
would eat sugar on his beefsteak, for one thing. 
The first time I saw him do it I was scared. I 
thought he was plum crazy, but afterward I found 
out it was just because he was a man, and his ma 
hadn't wanted him to eat sugar when he was a boy. 
Mr. Bennet will get over it." 

"He don't act as if he would." 

"Oh yes, he will. Jim Bennet never stuck to 
anything but being Jim Bennet for very long in 
his life, and this ain't being Jim Bennet." 

"He is a very good man," said Susan with a 
somewhat apologetic tone. 

"He's too good." 

"He's too good to cats." 

"Seems to me he's too good to 'most everybody. 
Think what he has done for Amanda and Alma, and 
how they act!" 

"Yes, they are ungrateful and real mean to him; 

205 



THE COPY-CAT 

and I feel sometimes as if I would like to tell them 
just what I think of them," said Susan Adkins. 
"Poor man, there he is, studying all the time what 
he can do for people, and he don't get very much 
himself." 

Mrs. Trimmer arose to take leave. She had a 
long, sallow face, capable of a sarcastic smile. 
"Then," said she, "if I were you I wouldn't begrudge 
him a chair in the parlor and a chance to read and 
smoke and hold a pussy-cat." 

"Who said I was begrudging it.? I can air out the 
parlor when he's got over the notion." 

"Well, he will, so you needn't worry," said Mrs. 
Trimmer. As she went down the street she could 
see Jim's profile beside the parlor window, and she 
smiled her sarcastic smile, which was not altogether 
unpleasant. "He's stopped smoking, and he ain't 
reading," she told herself. "It won't be very long 
before he's Jim Bennet again." 

But it was longer than she anticipated, for Jim's 
will was propped by Edward Hayward's. Edward 
kept Jim to his standpoint for weeks, until a few 
days before Christmas. Then came self-assertion, 
that self-assertion of negation which was all that 
Jim possessed in such a crisis. He called upon Dr. 
Hay ward; the two were together in the little study 
for nearly an hour, and talk ran high, then Jim 
prevailed. 

"It's no use, Edward," he said; "a man can't 
be made over when he's cut and dried in one fashion, 
the way I am. Maybe I'm doing wrong, but to me 
it looks like doing right, and there's something in 

206 



CORONATION 

the Bible about every man having his own right 
and wrong. If what you say is true, and I am hin- 
dering the Lord Almighty in His work, then it is 
for Him to stop me. He can do it. But meantime 
I've got to go on doing the way I always have. Joe 
has been trying to drive that tip-cart, and the horse 
ran away with him twice. Then he let the cart fall 
on his foot and mash one of his toes, and he can 
hardly get round, and Amanda and Alma don't dare 
touch that money in the bank for fear of not having 
enough to pay the taxes next year in case I don't 
help them. They only had a little money on hand 
when I gave them that talking to, and Christmas 
is 'most here, and they haven't got things they really 
need. Amanda's coat that she wore to meeting last 
Sunday didn't look very warm to me, and poor 
Alma had her furs chewed up by the Leach dog, and 
she's going without any. They need lots of things. 
And poor Mis' Adkins is 'most sick with tobacco 
smoke. I can see it, though she doesn't say anything, 
and the nice parlor curtains are full of it, and cat 
hairs are all over things. I can't hold out any longer, 
Edward. Maybe I am a door-mat; and if I am, and 
it is wicked, may the Lord forgive me, for I've got 
to keep right on being a door-mat." 

Hayward sighed and lighted his pipe. However, 
he had given up and connived with Jim. 

On Christmas eve the two men were in hiding 
behind a clump of cedars in the front yard of Jim's 
nieces' house. They watched the expressman deliver 
a great load of boxes and packages. Jim drew a 
breath of joyous relief. 

207 



THE COPY-CAT 

"They are taking them in," he whispered — "they 
are taking them in, Edward!" 

Hayward looked down at the dim face of the man 
beside him, and something akin to fear entered his 
heart. He saw the face of a lifelong friend, but he 
saw something in it which he had never recog- 
nized before. He saw the face of one of the children 
of heaven, giving only for the sake of the need of 
others, and glorifying the gifts with the love and 
pity of an angel. 

"I was afraid they wouldn't take them!" whis- 
pered Jim, and his watching face was beautiful, 
although it was only the face of a little, old man of 
a little village, with no great gift of intellect. There 
was a full moon riding high; the ground was covered 
with a glistening snow-level, over which wavered 
wonderful shadows, as of wings. One great star pre- 
vailed despite the silver might of the moon. To 
Ha3rward Jim's face seemed to prevail, as that star, 
among all the faces of humanity. 

Jim crept noiselessly toward a window, HajAvard 
at his heels. The two could see the lighted interior 
plainly. 

"See poor Alma trying on her furs," whispered 
Jim, in a rapture. "See Amanda with her coat. 
They have found the money. See Joe heft the tur- 
key." Suddenly he caught Hayward's arm, and 
the two crept away. Out on the road, Jim fairly 
sobbed with pure delight. "Oh, Edward," he said, "I 
am so thankful they took the things ! I was so afraid 
they wouldn't, and they needed them ! Oh, Edward, 
I am so thankful!" Edward pressed his friend's arm. 

208 



CORONATION 

When they reached Jim's house a great tiger-cat 
leaped to Jim's shoulder with the silence and swift- 
ness of a shadow. "He's always watching for me," 
said Jim, proudly. "Pussy! Pussy!" The cat be- 
gan to purr loudly, and rubbed his splendid head 
against the man's cheek. 

"I suppose," said Hayward, with something of 
awe in his tone, "that you won't smoke in the parlor 
to-night?" 

"Edward, I really can't. Poor woman, she's got 
it all aired and beautifully cleaned, and she's so 
happy over it. There's a good fire in the shed, and 
I will sit there with the pussy-cats until I go to bed. 
Oh, Edward, I am so thankful that they took the 
things!" 

"Good night, Jim." 

"Good night. You don't blame me, Edward?" 

"Who am I to blame you, Jim? Good night." 

Hayward watched the little man pass along the 
path to the shed door. Jim's back was slightly 
bent, but to his friend it seemed bent beneath a 
holy burden of love and pity for all humanity, and 
the inheritance of the meek seemed to crown that 
drooping old head. The door-mat, again spread 
freely for the trampling feet of all who got comfort 
thereby, became a blessed thing. The humble 
creature, despised and held in contempt like One 
greater than he, giving for the sake of the needs 
of others, went along the narrow foot-path through 
the snow. The minister took ofF his hat and stood 
watching until the door was opened and closed and 
the little window gleamed with golden light. 

14 



THE AMETHYST COMB 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

MISS J-ANE CAREW was at the railroad station 
waiting for the New York train. She was 
about to \-isit her friend, Mrs. Mola Longstreet. 
^^ ith Miss Carew was her maid, Margaret, a middle- 
aged Xew England woman, attired in the stiffest 
and most correct of maid-uniforms. She carried an 
old, large sole-leather bag, and also a rather large 
sole -leather jewel-case. The jewel-case, carried 
openly, was rather an unusual sight at a Xew Eng- 
land railroad station, but few knew what it was. 
The}- concluded it to be Margaret's special hand- 
bag. Margaret was a very tall, thin woman, un- 
bending as to carriage and expression. The one 
thing out of absolute plumb about Margaret was 
her little black bonnet. That was askew. Time 
had bereft the woman of so much hair that she could 
fasten no head-gear with securit}-. especialh" when 
the wind blew, and that morning there was a stiff 
gale. Margaret's bonnet was cocked over one e3"e. 
Miss Carew noticed it. 

"Margaret, your bonnet is crooked," she said. 

Margaret straightened her bonnet, but immedi- 
ately the bonnet veered again to the side, weighted 
by a stiff jet aigrette. Miss Carew observed the 

2i; 



THE COPY-CAT 

careen of the bonnet, realized that it was inevitable, 
and did not mention it again. Inwardly she resolved 
upon the removal of the jet aigrette later on. Miss 
Carew was slightly older than Margaret, and dressed 
in a style somewhat beyond her age. Jane Carew 
had been alert upon the situation of departing youth. 
She had eschewed gay colors and extreme cuts, and 
had her bonnets made to order, because there were 
no longer anything but hats in the milHnery shop. 
The milHner in Wheaton, where Miss Carew lived, 
had objected, for Jane Carew inspired reverence. 

"A bonnet is too old for you. Miss Carew," she 
said. "Women much older than you wear hats." 

"I trust that I know what is becoming to a woman 
of my years, thank you. Miss Waters," Jane had 
replied, and the milliner had meekly taken her order. 

After Miss Carew had left, the milliner told her 
girls that she had never seen a woman so perfectly 
crazy to look her age as Miss Carew. "And she a 
pretty woman, too," said the milliner; "as straight 
as an arrer, and slim, and with all that hair, scarcely 
turned at all." 

Miss Carew, with all her haste to assume years, 
remained i pretty woman, softly slim, with an abun- 
dance of dark hair, showing little gray. Sometimes 
Jane reflected, uneasily, that it ought at her time 
of life to be entirely gray. She hoped nobody would 
suspect her of dyeing it. She wore it parted in the 
middle, folded back smoothly, and braided in a 
compact mass on the top of her head. The style 
of her clothes was slightly behind the fashion, just 
enough to suggest conservatism and age. She car- 

214 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

ried a little silver-bound bag in one nicely gloved 
hand; with the other she held daintily out of the 
dust of the platfonn her dress-skirt. A glimpse of 
a silk frilled petticoat, of slender feet, and ankles 
delicately slim, was %'isible before the onslaught of 
the wind. Jane Carew made no futile effort to keep 
her skirts down before the wind-gusts. She was so 
much of the gentlewoman that she could be gravely 
oblivious to the exposure of her ankles. She looked 
as if she had never heard of ankles when her black 
silk skirts lashed about them. She rose superbl}" 
above the situation. For some abstruse reason Mar- 
garet's skirts were not affected by the wind. They 
might have been weighted with buckram, although 
it was no longer in general use. She stood, except 
for her veering bonnet, as stiffly immovable as a 
wooden doll. 

Miss Carew seldom left ^Tieaton. This \-isit to 
New York was an innovation. Quite a crowd gath- 
ered about Jane's sole-leather trunk when it was 
dumped on the platform by the local expressman. 
"Miss Carew is going to New York." one said to 
another, with much the same tone as if he had said, 
"The great elm on the common is going to move 
into Dr. Jones's front yard." 

When the train arrived, iMiss Carew, followed by 
^largaret, stepped aboard with a majestic disregard 
of ankles. She sat beside a window, and Margaret 
placed the bag on the floor and held the jewel-case 
in her lap. The case contained the Carew jewels. 
They were not especiall}- valuable, although they 
were rather numerous. There were cameos in 

215 



THE COPY-CAT 

brooches and heavy gold bracelets; corals which 
Miss Carew had not worn since her young girlhood. 
There were a set of garnets, some badly cut diamonds 
in ear-rings and rings, some seed-pearl ornaments, 
and a really beautiful set of amethysts. There were 
a necklace, two brooches — a bar and a circle — ear- 
rings, a ring, and a comb. Each piece was charm- 
ing, set in filigree gold with seed-pearls, but perhaps 
of them all the comb was the best. It was a very 
large comb. There was one great amethyst in the 
center of the top; on either side was an intricate 
pattern of plums in small amethysts, and seed-pearl 
grapes, with leaves and stems of gold. Margaret 
in charge of the jewel-case was imposing. When 
they arrived in New York she confronted every- 
body whom she met with a stony stare, which was 
almost accusative and convictive of guilt, in spite 
of entire innocence on the part of the person stared 
at. It was inconceivable that any mortal would 
have dared lay violent hands upon that jewel-case 
under that stare. It would have seemed to partake 
of the nature of grand larceny from Providence. 

When the two reached the up-town residence of 
Viola Longstreet, Viola gave a little scream at the 
sight of the case. 

"My dear Jane Carew, here you are with Mar- 
garet carrying that jewel-case out in plain sight. 
How dare you do such a thing? I really wonder 
you have not been held up a dozen times." 

Miss Carew smiled her gentle but almost stern 
smile — the Carew smile, which consisted in a widen- 
ing and slightly upward curving of tightly closed lips. 

216 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

"I do not think." said she, "that anybody would 
be apt to interfere with Margaret." 

Viola Longstreet laughed, the ringing peal of a 
child, although she was as old as Miss Carew. "I 
think you are right, Jane," said she. '"I don't be- 
lieve a crook in Xew York would dare face that 
maid of 3-ours. He would as soon encounter PI3"- 
mouth Rock. I am glad 30U have brought \'our de- 
lightful old jewels, although you never wear any- 
thing except those lovely old pearl spra3-s and dull 
diamonds." 

"Now," stated Jane, with a little toss of pride, 
"I have Aunt FeUcia's amethysts. " 

"Oh, sure enough! I remember 30U did write 
me last summer that she had died and 3'ou had the 
amethysts at last. She must have been ver\- old." 

"Xinet3"-one." 

"She might have given you the amethj'sts before. 
You, of course, will wear them; and I — am going 
to borrow the corals!" 

Jane Carew gasped. 

"You do not object, do 3-ou, dear? I have a new 
dinner-gown which clamors for corals, and m3- bank- 
account is strained, and I could bu}- none equal to 
those of yours, an}"wa3-." 

"Oh, I do not object," said Jane Carew; still she 
looked aghast. 

Yiola Longstreet shrieked with laughter. "Oh, 
I know. You think the corals too 30ung for me. 
You have not worn them since you left off" dotted 
muslin. M3' dear, 3-ou insisted upon growing old 
— I insisted upon remaining 3-oung. I had two 

217 



THE COPY-CAT 

new dotted muslins last summer. As for corals, I 
would wear them in the face of an opposing army! 
Do not judge me by yourself, dear. You laid hold 
of Age and held him, although you had your com- 
plexion and your shape and hair. As for me, I had 
my complexion and kept it. I also had my hair 
and kept it. My shape has been a struggle, but it 
was worth while. I, my dear, have held Youth so 
tight that he has almost choked to death, but held 
him I have. You cannot deny it. Look at me, 
Jane Carew, and tell me if, judging by my looks, 
you can reasonably state that I have no longer the 
right to wear corals." 

Jane Carew looked. She smiled the Carew smile. 
"You do look very young, Viola," said Jane, "but 
you are not." 

"Jane Carew," said Viola, "I am young. May 
I wear your corals at my dinner to-morrow night?" 

"Why, of course, if you think — " 

"If I think them suitable. My dear, if there 
were on this earth ornaments more suitable to ex- 
treme youth than corals, I would borrow them if you 
owned them, but, failing that, the corals will answer. 
Wait until you see me in that taupe dinner-gown 
and the corals!" 

Jane waited. She visited with Viola, whom she 
loved, although they had little in common, partly 
because of leading widely different lives, partly be- 
cause of constitutional variations. She was dressed 
for dinner fully an hour before it was necessary, 
and she sat in the library reading when Viola 
swept in. 

2i8 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

Viola was really entrancing. It was a pity that 
Jane Carew had such an unswerving eye for the 
essential truth that it could not be appeased by 
actual effect. Viola had doubtless, as she had said, 
struggled to keep her slim shape, but she had kept 
it, and, what was more, kept it without evidence 
of struggle. If she was in the least hampered by 
tight lacing and length of undergarment, she gave 
no evidence of it as she curled herself up in a big 
chair and (Jane wondered how she could bring her- 
self to do it) crossed her legs, revealing one delicate 
foot and ankle, silk-stockinged with taupe, and shod 
with a coral satin slipper with a silver heel and a 
great silver buckle. On Viola's fair round neck the 
Carew corals lay bloominglj'; her beautiful arms 
were clasped with them; a great coral brooch with 
wonderful carving confined a graceful fold of the 
taupe over one hip, a coral comb surmounted the 
shining waves of Viola's hair. Viola was an ash- 
blonde, her complexion was as roses, and the corals 
were ideal for her. As Jane regarded her friend's 
beauty, however, the fact that Viola was not young, 
that she was as old as herself, hid it and overshad- 
owed it. 

"Well, Jane, don't you think I look well in the 
corals, after all?" asked Viola, and there was some- 
thing pitiful in her voice. 

When a man or a woman holds fast to youth, even 
if successfully, there is something of the pitiful and 
the tragic involved. It is the everlasting struggle 
of the soul to retain the joy of earth, whose fleeting 
distinguishes it from heaven, and whose retention 

219 



THE COPY-CAT 

is not accomplished without an inner knowledge of 
its futility. 

"I suppose you do, Viola," replied Jane Carew, 
with the inflexibility of fate, "but I really think 
that only very young girls ought to wear corals." 

Viola laughed, but the laugh had a minor cadence. 
"But I am a young girl, Jane," she said. "I must 
be a young girl. I never had any girlhood when I 
should have had. You know that." 

Viola had married, when very young, a man old 
enough to be her father, and her wedded life had been 
a sad aflPair, to which, however, she seldom alluded. 
Viola had much pride with regard to the inevitable 
past. 

"Yes," agreed Jane. Then she added, feeling 
that more might be expected, "Of course I suppose 
that marrying so very young does make a difference." 

"Yes," said Viola, "it does. In fact, it makes of 
one's girlhood an anti-climax, of which many dis- 
pute the wisdom, as you do. But have it I will. Jane, 
your amethysts are beautiful." 

Jane regarded the clear purple gleam of a stone 
on her arm. "Yes," she agreed, "Aunt Felicia's ame- 
thysts have always been considered very beautiful." 

"And such a full set," said Viola. 

"Yes," said Jane. She colored a little, but Viola 
did not know why. At the last moment Jane had 
decided not to wear the amethyst comb, because it 
seemed to her altogether too decorative for a woman 
of her age, and she was afraid to mention it to Viola. 
She was sure that Viola would laugh at her and in- 
sist upon her wearing it. 

220 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

"The ear-rings are lovely," said ^'iola. " My dear, 
I don't see how you ever consented to have your 
ears pierced." 

"I was very j-oung, and my mother wished me 
to," replied Jane, blushing. 

The door-bell rang. Viola had been covertly lis- 
tening for it all tlie time. Soon a ver}- beautiful 
young man came with a curious dancing step into 
the room. Harold Lind always gave the effect of 
dancing when he walked. He always, moreover, 
gave the effect of extreme youth and of the utmost 
joy and mirth in life itself. He regarded everything 
and everybody with a smile as of humorous appre- 
ciation, and yet the appreciation was so good- 
natured that it offended nobod}'. 

"Look at me — I am absurd and happy; look at 
yourself, also absurd and happy; look at every- 
body else likewise; look at life — a jest so delicious 
that it is quite worth one's while djnng to be made 
acquainted %vith it." That is what Harold Lind 
seemed to sa}'. Viola Longstreet became even more 
\'outhful under his gaze; even Jane Carew regretted 
that she had not worn her amethyst comb and be- 
gan to doubt its unsuitability. Viola very soon 
called the young man's attention to Jane's ame- 
thysts, and Jane alwa\s wondered why she did not 
then mention the comb. She removed a brooch and 
a bracelet for him to inspect. 

"The}- are really wonderful," he declared. "I 
have never seen greater depth of color in amethysts.' 

"Mr. Lind is an authority on jewels," declared 
Viola. The 3"oung man shot a curious glance at her, 

2Z1 



THE COPY-CAT 

which Jane remembered long afterward. It was one 
of those glances which are as keystones to situations. 

Harold looked at the purple stones with the ex- 
pression of a child with a toy. There was much of 
the child in the young man's whole appearance, 
but of a mischievous and beautiful child, of whom 
his mother might observe, with adoration and ill- 
concealed boastfulness, "I can never tell what that 
child will do next!" 

Harold returned the bracelet and brooch to Jane, 
and smiled at her as if amethysts were a lovely 
purple joke between her and himself, uniting them 
by a peculiar bond of fine understanding. "Exqui- 
site, Miss Carew," he said. Then he looked at Viola. 
"Those corals suit you wonderfully, Mrs. Long- 
street," he observed, "but amethysts would also 
suit you." 

"Not with this gown," replied Viola, rather piti- 
fully. There was something in the young man's 
gaze and tone which she did not understand, but 
which she vaguely quivered before. 

Harold certainly thought the corals were too young 
for Viola. Jane understood, and felt an unworthy 
triumph. Harold, who was young enough in actual 
years to be Viola's son, and was younger still by 
reason of his disposition, was amused by the sight 
of her in corals, although he did not intend to be- 
tray his amusement. He considered Viola in corals 
as too rude a jest to share with her. Had poor Viola 
once grasped Harold Lind's estimation of her she 
would have as soon gazed upon herself in her cof- 
fin. Harold's comprehension of the essentials was 

222 



THE AMETHYST COxMB 

be\-ond Jane Carew's. It was fairly ghastlv, par- 
taking of the nature of X-rays, but it never disturbed 
Harold Lind. He went along his dance-track undis- 
turbed, his blue eyes never losing their high lights 
of glee, his hps never losing their inscrutable smile 
at some happy understanding between hfe and him- 
self. Harold had fair hair, which was very smooth 
and glossy. His skin was Uke a girl's. He was so 
beautiful that he showed cleverness in an affecta- 
tion of carelessness in dress. He did not like to wear 
evening clothes, because they had necessarily to 
be immaculate. That evening Jane regarded him 
with an inward criticism that he was too handsome 
for a man. She told Viola so when the dinner was 
over and he and the other guests had gone. 

"He is very handsome," she said, "but I never 
like to see a man quite so handsome." 

"You will change your mind when }'ou see him 
in tweeds," returned Viola. '"He loathes evening 
clothes." 

Jane regarded her anxiously. There was some- 
thing in Viola's tone which disturbed and shocked 
her. It was inconceivable that Viola should be in 
love with that youth, and yet — "He looks very 
young," said Jane in a prim voice. 

"He is yoimg," admitted Viola; "still, not quite 
so young as he looks. Sometimes I tell him he will 
look like a boy if he lives to be eighty." 

"Well, he must be vet}- >'oung," persisted Jane. 

"Yes," said Viola, but she did not sa)- how young. 
Viola herself, now that the excitement was over, 
did not look so young as at the beginning of the 



THE COPY-CAT 

evening. She removed the corals, and Jane con- 
sidered that she looked much better without 
them. 

"Thank you for your corals, dear," said Viola. 
"Where is Margaret?" 

Margaret answered for herself by a tap on the 
door. She and Viola's maid, Louisa, had been sit- 
ting on an upper landing, out of sight, watching the 
guests down-stairs. Margaret took the corals and 
placed them in their nest in the jewel-case, also the 
amethysts, after Viola had gone. The jewel-case 
was a curious old affair with many compartments. 
The amethysts required two. The comb was so 
large that it had one for itself. That was the reason 
why Margaret did not discover that evening that it 
was gone. Nobody discovered it for three days, 
when Viola had a little card-party. There was a 
whist-table for Jane, who had never given up the 
reserved and stately game. There were six tables 
in Viola's pretty living-room, with a little conserva- 
tory at one end and a leaping hearth fire at the other. 
Jane's partner was a stout old gentleman whose wife 
was shrieking with merriment at an auction-bridge 
table. The other whist-players were a stupid, very 
small young man who was aimlessly willing to play 
anything, and an amiable young woman who be- 
lieved in self-denial. Jane played conscientiously. 
She returned trump leads, and played second hand 
low, and third high, and it was not until the third 
rubber was over that she saw. It had been in full 
evidence from the first. Jane would have seen it 
before the guests arrived, but Viola had not put it 

224 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

in her hair until the last moment. Viola was wild 
with delight, yet shamefaced and a trifle uneasy. 
In a soft, white gown, with violets at her waist, she 
was playing with Harold Lind, and in her ash-blond 
hair was Jane Carew's amethyst comb. Jane gasped 
and paled. The amiable young woman who was her 
opponent stared at her. Finally she spoke in a low 
voice. 

"Aren't you well, Miss Carew?" she asked. 

The men, in their turn, stared. The stout one 
rose fussily. "Let me get a glass of water," he said. 
The stupid small man stood up and waved his hands 
with nervousness. 

"Aren't you well?" asked the amiable young lady 
again. 

Then Jane Carew recovered her poise. It was 
seldom that she lost it. "I am quite well, thank you. 
Miss Murdock," she replied. "I believe diamonds 
are trumps." 

They all settled again to the play, but the yoimg 
lady and the two men continued glancing at Miss 
Carew. She had recovered her dignity of manner, 
but not her color. Moreover, she had a bewildered 
expression. Resolutely she abstained from glancing 
again at her amethyst comb in Viola Longstreet's 
ash-blond hair, and gradually, by a course of sub- 
conscious reasoning as she carefully played her cards, 
she arrived at a conclusion which caused her color 
to return and the bewildered expression to disappear. 
When refreshments were served, the amiable yoimg 
lady said, kindly: 

"You look quite yourself, now, dear Miss Carew, 

15 225 



THE COPY-CAT 

but at one time while we were playing I was really 
alarmed. You were very pale." 

"I did not feel in the least ill," replied Jane 
Carew. She smiled her Carew smile at the young 
lady. Jane had settled it with herself that of course 
Viola had borrowed that amethyst comb, appealing 
to Margaret. Viola ought not to have done that; 
she should have asked her. Miss Carew; and Jane 
wondered, because Viola was very well bred; but 
of course that was what had happened. Jane had 
come down before Viola, leaving Margaret in her 
room, and Viola had asked her. Jane did not then 
remember that Viola had not even been told that 
there was an amethyst comb in existence. She 
remembered when Margaret, whose face was as 
pale and bewildered as her own, mentioned it, when 
she was brushing her hair. 

"I saw it, first thing, Miss Jane," said Margaret. 
"Louisa and I were on the landing, and I looked 
down and saw your amethyst comb in Mrs. Long- 
street's hair." 

"She had asked you for it, because I had gone 
down-stairs?" asked Jane, feebly. 

"No, Miss Jane. I had not seen her. I went 
out right after you did. Louisa had finished Mrs. 
Longstreet, and she and I went down to the mail- 
box to post a letter, and then we sat on the landing, 
and — I saw your comb." 

"Have you," asked Jane, "looked in the jewel- 
case ?" 

"Yes, Miss Jane." 

"And it is not there?" 

226 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

" It is not there. Miss Jane." Margaret spoke with 
a sort of solemn intoning. She recognized what the 
situation impHed, and she, who fitted squarely and 
entirely into her humble state, was aghast before 
a hitherto unimagined occurrence. She could not, 
even with the e^^dence of her senses against a lady 
and her mistress's old friend, believe in them. Had 
Jane told her firmly that she had not seen that 
comb in that ash-blond hair she might have been 
hypnotized into agreement. But Jane simply stared 
at her, and the Carew dignity was more shaken than 
she had ever seen it. 

"Bring the jewel-case here, Margaret," ordered 
Jane in a gasp. 

Margaret brought the jewel-case, and everything 
was taken out; all the compartments were opened, 
but the amethyst comb was not there. Jane could 
not sleep that night. At dawn she herself doubted 
the evidence of her senses. The jewel-case was thor- 
oughly overlooked again, and still Jane was incredu- 
lous that she would ever see her comb in Viola's 
hair again. But that evening, although there were 
no guests except Harold Lind, who dined at the 
house, Viola appeared in a pink-tinted gown, with a 
knot of violets at her waist, and — she wore the ame- 
thyst comb. She said not one word concerning it; 
nobody did. Harold Lind was in wild spirits. The 
conviction grew upon Jane that tlie irresponsible, 
beautiful }'^outh was covertly amusing himself at her, 
at Viola's, at everybody's expense. Perhaps he 
included himself. He talked incessantly, not in 
reality brilHantly, but with an effect of sparkling 

227 



THE COPY-CAT 

effervescence which was fairly dazzling. Viola's 
servants restrained with difficulty their laughter at 
his sallies. Viola regarded Harold with ill-concealed 
tenderness and admiration. She herself looked even 
younger than usual, as if the innate youth in her 
leaped to meet this charming comrade. 

Jane felt sickened by it all. She could not under- 
stand her friend. Not for one minute did she dream 
that there could be any serious outcome of the 
situation; that Viola would marry this mad youth, 
who, she knew, was making such covert fun at her 
expense; but she was bewildered and indignant. 
She wished that she had not come. That evening 
when she went to her room she directed Margaret 
to pack, as she intended to return home the next 
day. Margaret began folding gowns with alacrity. 
She was as conservative as her mistress and she 
severely disapproved of many things. However, the 
matter of the amethyst comb was uppermost in her 
mind. She was wild with curiosity. She hardly 
dared inquire, but finally she did. 

"About the amethyst comb, ma'am?" she said, 
with a delicate cough. 

"What about it, Margaret.?" returned Jane, 
severely. 

"I thought perhaps Mrs. Longstreet had told you 
how she happened to have it." 

Poor Jane Carew had nobody in whom to confide. 
For once she spoke her mind to her maid. "She 
has not said one word. And, oh, Margaret, I don't 
know what to think of it." 

Margaret pursed her lips. 
228 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

"What do you think, Margaret?" 

"I don't know, Miss Jane." 

"I don't." 

"I did not mention it to Louisa," said Margaret. 

"Oh, I hope not!" cried Jane. 

"But she did to me," said Margaret. "She asked 
had I seen Miss Viola's new comb, and then she 
laughed, and I thought from the way she acted 
that — " Margaret hesitated. 

"That what?" 

"That she meant Mr. Lind had given Miss Mola 
the comb." 

Jane started violently. "Absolutely impossible!" 
she cried. "That, of course, is nonsense. There 
must be some explanation. Probably Mrs. Long- 
street will explain before we go." 

Mrs. Longstreet did not explain. She wondered 
and expostulated when Jane announced her firm 
determination to leave, but she seemed utterly at 
a loss for the reason. She did not mention the comb. 

When Jane Carew took leave of her old friend she 
was entireh' sure in her own mind that she would 
never visit her again — might never even see her 
again. 

Jane was unutterably thankful to be back in her 
own peaceful home, over which no shadow of absurd 
mystery brooded; only a calm afternoon light of 
life, which disclosed gently but did not conceal or 
betray. Jane settled back into her pleasant life, 
and the days passed, and the weeks, and the months, 
and the years. She heard nothing whatever from 
or about Viola Longstreet for three years. Then, one 

225 



THE COPY-CAT 

day, Margaret returned from the city, and she had 
met Viola's old maid Louisa in a department store, 
and she had news. Jane wished for strength to 
refuse to listen, but she could not muster it. She 
listened while Margaret brushed her hair. 

"Louisa has not been with Miss Viola for a long 
time," said Margaret. "She is living with some- 
body else. Miss Viola lost her money, and had to 
give up her house and her servants, and Louisa said 
she cried when she said good-by." 

Jane made an effort. "What became of — " she 
began. 

Margaret answered the unfinished Sentence. She 
was excited by gossip as by a stimulant. Her thin 
cheeks burned, her eyes blazed. "Mr. Lind," said 
Margaret, "Louisa told me, had turned out to be 
real bad. He got into some money trouble, and 
then" — Margaret lowered her voice — "he was ar- 
rested for taking a lot of money which didn't belong 
to him. Louisa said he had been in some business 
where he handled a lot of other folks' money, and 
he cheated the men who were in the business with 
him, and he was tried, and Miss Viola, Louisa thinks, 
hid away somewhere so they wouldn't call her to 
testify, and then he had to go to prison; but — " 
Margaret hesitated. 

"What is it?" asked Jane. 

"Louisa thinks he died about a year and a half 
ago. She heard the lady where she lives now talking 
about it. The lady used to know Miss Viola, and 
she heard the lady say Mr. Lind had died in prison, 
that he couldn't stand the hard life, and that Miss 

230 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

Viola had lost all her mone}- through him, and then" 
— Margaret hesitated again, and her mistress prodded 
sharply — "Louisa said that she heard the lady say 
that she had thought Miss Viola would marry him, 
but she hadn't, and she had more sense than she 
had thought." 

"Mrs. Longstreet would never for one moment 
have entertained the thought of marr^-ing ^Ir. Lind; 
he was young enough to be her grandson," said 
Jane, several}'. 

"Yes, ma'am," said Margaret. 

It so happened that Jane went to New York 
that day week, and at a jewelry counter in one of 
the shops she discovered the ameth}'st comb. There 
were on sale a number of bits of antique jewelry, 
the precious flotsam and jetsam of old and wealthy 
families which had drifted, nobody knew before 
what currents of adversity, into that harbor of 
sale for all the world to see. Jane made no inquiries; 
the saleswoman volunteered simple" the information 
that the comb was a real antique, and the stones 
were real amethysts and pearls, and the setting was 
solid gold, and the price was thirty dollars; and 
Jane bought it. She carried her old amethyst comb 
home, but she did not show it to anybody. She 
replaced it in its old compartment in her jewel- 
case and thought of it with wonder, with a hint of 
jov at regaining it, and with much sadness. She 
was still fond of Viola Longstreet. Jane did not 
easilv part with her loves. She did not know where 
^ iola was. Margaret had inquired of Louisa, who 
did not know. Poor Mola had probably drifted 

231 



THE COPY-CAT 

into some obscure harbor of life wherein she was 
hiding until life was over. 

And then Jane met Viola one spring day on Fifth 
Avenue. 

"It is a very long time since I have seen you," 
said Jane with a reproachful accent, but her eyes 
were tenderly inquiring. 

"Yes," agreed Viola. Then she added, "I have 
seen nobody. Do you know what a change has come 
in my life.''" she asked. 

"Yes, dear," replied Jane, gently. "My Margaret 
met Louisa once and she told her." 

"Oh yes — Louisa," said Viola. "I had to dis- 
charge her. My money is about gone. I have only 
just enough to keep the wolf from entering the door 
of a hall bedroom in a respectable boarding-house. 
However, I often hear him howl, but I do not mind 
at all. In fact, the howling has become company 
for me. 1 rather like it. It is queer what things one 
can learn' to like. There are a few left yet, like the 
awful heat in summer, and the food, which I do not 
fancy, bift that is simply a matter of time." 

Viola's laugh was like a bird's song — a part of her 
— and nothing except death could silence it for long. 

"Then," said Jane, "you stay in New York all 
summer?'' 

Viola laughed again. "My dear," she replied, 
"of course. It is all very simple. If I left New 
York, and paid board anywhere, I would never have 
enough money to buy my return fare, and certainly 
not to keep that wolf from my hall-bedroom door." 

"Then," said Jane, "you are going home with me." 
232 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

"I cannot consent to accept charity, Jane, " said 
Viola. "Don't ask me." 

Then, for the first time in her life, Viola Longstreet 
saw Jane Carew's eyes blaze with anger. "You 
dare to call it charity coming from me to jour" 
she said, and Viola gave in. 

When Jane saw the little room where ^ iola lived, 
she marveled, with the exceedingly great marveling 
of a woman to whom love of a man has never come, 
at a woman who could give so much and with no 
return. 

Little enough to pack had ^ iola. Jane under- 
stood with a shudder of horror that it was almost 
destitution, not poverty, to which her old friend \%*as 
reduced. 

"You shall have that northeast room which you 
alwa\"s liked," she told Mola when the}' were on 
the train. 

"The one with the old-fashioned peacoct paper, 
and the pine-tree growing close to one wiidow?" 
said Viola, happily. 

Jane and \'iola settled down to life tt-gether, 
and Viola, despite the tragedy which she had known, 
realized a peace and happiness beyond her imagina- 
tion. In realit}', although she still looked so }^outh- 
ful, she was old enough to enjoy the pleasures of later 
life. Enjoy them she did to the utmost. She and 
Jane made calls together, entertained friends at 
small and stately dinners, and gave little teas. They 
drove about in the old Carew carriage. \'iola had 
some new clothes. She played yery well on Jane's 
old piano. She embroidered, she gardened. She 

-33 



THE COPY-CAT 

lived the sweet, placid life of an older lady in a little 
village, and loved it. She never mentioned Harold 
Lind. 

Not among the vicious of the earth was poor Har- 
old Lind; rather among those of such beauty and 
charm that the earth spoils them, making them, in 
their own estimation, free guests at all its tables 
of bounty. Moreover, the young man had, deeply 
rooted in his character, the traits of a mischievous 
child, rejoicing in his mischief more from a sense of 
humor so keen that it verged on cruelty than from 
any intention to harm others. Over that affair of 
the amethyst comb, for instance, his irresponsible, 
selfish, childish soul had fairly reveled in glee. He 
had not been fond of Viola, but he liked her fondness 
for himself. He had made sport of her, but only 
for his own entertainment — never for the entertain- 
ment of others. He was a beautiful creature, seeking 
out paths of pleasure and folly for himself alone, 
which ended as do all paths of earthly pleasure and 
folly. Harold had admired Viola, but from the same 
point of view as Jane Carew's. Viola had, when she 
looked her youngest and best, always seemed so 
old as to be venerable to him. He had at times 
compunctions, as if he were making a jest of his 
grandmother. Viola never knew the truth about the 
amethyst comb. He had considered that one of the 
best frolics of his life. He had simply purloined it 
and presented it to Viola, and merrily left matters 
to settle themselves. 

Viola and Jane had lived together a month before 
the comb was mentioned. Then one day Viola was 

234 



THE AMETHYST COMB 

in Jane's room and the jewel-case was out. and she 
began examining its contents. ^Vhen she found the 
amethyst comb she gave a Uttle cry. Jane, who had 
been seated at her desk and had not seen what was 
going on, turned around. 

Viola stood holding the comb, and her cheeks 
were burning. She fondled the trinket as if it had 
been a bab}". Jane watched her. She began to 
understand the bare facts of the mystery of the dis- 
appearance of her amethyst comb, but the subtlet}- 
of it was forever beyond her. Had the other woman 
explained what was in her mind, in her heart — how 
that reckless young man whom she had loved had 
given her the treasure because he had heard her 
admire Jane s amethysts, and she, all unconscious 
of any wrong-doing, had ever regarded it as the one 
evidence of his thoughtful tenderness, it being the 
one gift she had ever received from him; how she 
parted with it, as she had parted with her other 
jewels, in order to obtain money to purchase com- 
forts for him while he was in prison — ^Jane could 
not have understood. The fact of an older woman 
being fond of a young man, almost a boy. was be- 
3^ond her mental grasp. She had no imagination 
with which to comprehend that innocent, pathetic, 
almost terrible love of one who has trodden the 
earth long for one who has just set dancing feet 
upon it. It was noble of Jane Carew that, lacking 
all such imagination, she acted as she did: that, al- 
though she did not, could not, formulate it to herself, 
she would no more have deprived the other woman 
and the dead man of that one little unscathed bond 



THE COPY-CAT 

of tender goodness than she would have robbed 
his grave of flowers. 

Viola looked at her. "I cannot tell you all about 
it; you would laugh at me," she whispered; "but 
this was mine once." 

"It is yours now, dear," said Jane. 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

TT was an insolent da}-. There are days which, 
* to imaginative minds, at least, possess strangely 
human qualities. Their atmospheres predispose peo- 
ple to crime or %'irtue, to the calm of good will, to 
sneaking vice, or fierce, unprovoked aggression. The 
day was of the last description. A beast, or a human 
being in whose veins coursed undisciplined blood, 
might, as involuntarily as the boughs of trees lash 
before storms, perform wild and \\-icked deeds after 
inhaling that hot air, e^^l with the sweat of sin- 
evoked toil, with nitrogen stored from festering sores 
of nature and the loathsome emanations of suffering 
life. 

It had not rained for weeks, but the humidity was 
great. The clouds of dust which arose beneath the 
man's feet had a horrible damp stickiness. His face 
and hands were grimy, as were his shoes, his cheap, 
ready-made suit, and his straw hat. However, the 
man felt a pride in his clothes, for they were at least 
the garb of freedom. He had come out of prison the 
day before, and had scorned the suit proffered him 
by the officials. He had given it awa}-, and bought 
a new one with a goodly part of his small stock of 
mone}\ This suit was of a small-checked pattern. 

239 



THE COPY-CAT 

Nobody could tell from it that the wearer had just 
left jail. He had been there for several years for 
one of the minor offenses against the law. His term 
would probably have been shorter, but the judge 
had been careless, and he had no friends. Stebbins 
had never been the sort to make many friends, 
although he had never cherished animosity toward 
any human being. Even some injustice in his sen- 
tence had not caused him to feel any rancor. 

During his stay in the prison he had not been 
really unhappy. He had accepted the inevitable — 
the yoke of the strong for the weak — ^with a patience 
which brought almost a sense of enjoyment. But, 
now that he was free, he had suddenly become alert, 
watchful of chances for his betterment. From being 
a mere kenneled creature he had become as a 
hound on the scent, the keenest on earth — that of 
self-interest. He was changed, while yet living, from 
a being outside the world to one with the world 
before him. He felt young, although he was a 
middle-aged, almost elderly man. He had in his 
pocket only a few dollars. He might have had more 
had he not purchased the checked suit and had he 
not given much away. There was another man whose 
term would be up in a week, and he had a sickly 
wife and several children. Stebbins, partly from 
native kindness and generosity, partly from a senti- 
ment which almost amounted to superstition, had 
given him of his slender store. He had been de- 
prived of his freedom because of money; he said to 
himself that his return to it should be heralded by the 
music of it scattered abroad for the good of another. 

240 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

Now and then as he walked Stebbins removed his 
new straw hat, wiped his forehead vdth a stiff new 
handkerchief, looked with some concern at the grime 
left upon it, then felt anxiously of his short crop 
of grizzled hair. He would be glad when it grew 
only a little, for it was at present a telltale to obser- 
vant e}-es. Also now and then he took from another 
pocket a small mirror which he had just purchased, 
and scrutinized his face. Even- rime he did so he 
rubbed his cheeks violentlj^, then ^"iewed with satis- 
faction the hard glow which replaced the yeUow 
prison pallor. Ever}- now and then, too, he remem- 
bered to throw his shoulders back, hold his chin 
high, and swing out his right leg more freely. At 
such times he almost swaggered, he became fairly 
insolent with his new sense of freedom. He felt 
himself the equal if not the peer of all creation. 
\Mienever a carriage or a motor-car passed him on the 
country^ road he assumed, with the skill of an actor, 
the air of a business man hastening to an important 
engagement. However, always his mind was work- 
ing over a hard problem. He knew that his store of 
money was scant)', that it would not last long even 
with the strictest economy; he had no friends; a 
prison record is sure to leak out when a man seeks 
a job. He was facing the problem of bare existence. 

Although the da}- was so hot, it was late summer; 
soon would come the frost and the winter. He wished 
to live to enjoy his freedom, and all he had for assets 
was that freedom: which was paradoxical, for it 
did not signif)- the abihty to obtain work, which 
was the power of life. Outside the stone wall of the 
16 ^i 



THE COPY-CAT 

prison he was now inclosed by a subtle, intangible, 
yet infinitely more unyielding one — the prejudice 
of his kind against the released prisoner. He was 
to all intents and purposes a prisoner still, for all his 
spurts of swagger and the youthful leap of his pulses, 
and while he did not admit that to himself, yet 
always, since he had the hard sense of the land of 
his birth — New England — he pondered that problem 
of existence. He felt instinctively that it would be 
a useless proceeding for him to approach any human 
being for employment. He knew that even the 
freedom, which he realized through all his senses 
like an essential perfume, could not yet overpower 
the reek of the prison. As he walked through the 
clogging dust he thought of one after another whom 
he had known before he had gone out of the world 
of free men and had bent his back under the hand of 
the law. There were, of course, people in his little 
native village, people who had been friends and 
neighbors, but there were none who had ever loved 
him sufficiently for him to conquer his resolve to 
never ask aid of them. He had no relatives except 
cousins more or less removed, and they would have 
nothing to do with him. 

There had been a woman whom he had meant to 
marry, and he had been sure that she would marry 
him; but after he had been a year in prison the 
news had come to him in a roundabout fashion that 
she had married another suitor. Even had she re- 
mained single he could not have approached her, 
least of all for aid. Then, too, through all his term 
she had made no sign, there had been no letter, no 

242 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

message; and he had received at first letters and 
flowers and messages from sentimental women. 
There had been nothing from her. He had accepted 
nothing, with the curious patience, carrying an odd 
pleasure with it, which had come to him when the 
prison door first closed upon him. He had not for- 
gotten her, but he had not consciouslj' mourned 
her. His loss, his ruin, had been so tremendous that 
she had been swallowed up in it. ^\Tien one's 
whole system needs to be steeled to trouble and pain, 
single pricks lose importance. He thought of her 
that day without any sense of sadness. He imagined 
her in a prett}", well-ordered home with her husband 
and children. Perhaps she had grown stout. She 
had been a slender woman. He tried idly to imagine 
how she would look stout, then by the sequence of 
self-preser\'ation the imagination of stoutness in an- 
other led to the problem of keeping the covering 
of flesh and fatness upon his own bones. The ques- 
tion now was not of the woman; she had passed 
out of his Ufe. The question was of the keeping that 
life itself, the life which involved everything else, 
in a hard world, which would remorselessly as a steel 
trap grudge him life and snap upon him, now he was 
become its prey. 

He walked and walked, and it was high noon, and 
he was hungr}'. He had in his pocket a small loaf 
of bread and two frankfurters, and he heard the 
splashing ripple of a brook. At that juncture the 
road was bordered by thick woodland. He followed, 
pushing his way through the trees and undergrowth, 
the sound of the brook, and sat down in a cool, 

243 



THE COPY-CAT 

green solitude with a sigh of rehef. He bent over 
the clear run, made a cup of his hand, and drank, 
then he fell to eating. Close beside him grew some 
wintergreen, and when he had finished his bread and 
frankfurters he began plucking the glossy, aromatic 
leaves and chewing them automatically. The savor 
reached his palate, and his memory awakened before 
it as before a pleasant tingling of a spur. As a boy 
how he had loved this little green low-growing plant! 
It had been one of the luxuries of his youth. Now, 
as he tasted it, joy and pathos stirred in his very 
soul. What a wonder youth had been, what a 
splendor, what an immensity to be rejoiced over 
and regretted! The man lounging beside the brook, 
chewing wintergreen leaves, seemed to realize anti- 
podes. He lived for the moment in the past, and 
the immutable future, which might contain the past 
in the revolution of time. He smiled, and his face 
fell into boyish, almost childish, contours. He 
plucked another glossy leaf with his hard, veinous 
old hands. His hands would not change to suit his 
mood, but his limbs relaxed like those of a boy. He 
stared at the brook gurgling past in brown ripples, 
shot with dim prismatic lights, showing here clear 
green water lines, here inky depths, and he thought 
of the possibility of trout. He wished for fishing- 
tackle. 

Then suddenly out of a mass of green looked two 
girls, with wide, startled eyes, and rounded mouths 
of terror which gave vent to screams. There was a 
scuttling, then silence. The man wondered why 
the girls were so silly, why they ran. He did not 

244 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

dream of the possibility of their terror of him. He 
ate another wintergreen leaf, and thought of the 
woman he had expected to marry when he was ar- 
rested and imprisoned. She did not go back to his 
childish memories. He had met her when first youth 
had passed, and yet, somehow, the savor of the 
wintergreen leaves brought her face before him. It 
is strange how the excitement of one sense will some- 
times act as stimulant for the awakening of another. 
Now the sense of taste brought into full activity 
that of sight. He saw the woman just as she had 
looked when he had last seen her. She had not been 
pretty, but she was exceedingly dainty, and pos- 
sessed of a certain elegance of carriage which at- 
tracted. He saw quite distinctly her small, irregu- 
lar face and the satin-smooth coils of dark hair 
around her head; he saw her slender, dusky hands 
with the well-cared-for nails and the too prominent 
veins; he saw the gleam of the diamond which he 
had given her. She had sent it to him just after his 
arrest, and he had returned it. He wondered idly 
whether she still owned it and wore it, and what her 
husband thought of it. He speculated childishly — 
somehow imprisonment had encouraged the return 
of childish speculations — as to whether the woman's 
husband had given her a larger and costher diamond 
than his, and he felt a pang of jealousy. He re- 
fused to see another diamond than his own upon 
that slender, dark hand. He saw her in a black silk 
gown which had been her best. There had been 
some red about it, and a gUtter of jet. He had 
thought it a magnificent gown, and the woman in it 

24S 



THE COPY-CAT 

like a princess. He could see her leaning back, in 
her long slim grace, in a corner of a sofa, and the 
soft dark folds starry with jet sweeping over her 
knees and just allowing a glimpse of one little foot. 
Her feet had been charming, very small and highly 
arched. Then he remembered that that evening 
they had been to a concert in the town hall, and 
that afterward they had partaken of an oyster stew 
in a little restaurant. Then back his mind traveled 
to the problem of his own existence, his food and 
shelter and clothes. He dismissed the woman from 
his thought. He was concerned now with the primal 
conditions of life itself. How was he to eat when 
his little stock of money was gone? He sat staring 
at the brook; he chewed wintergreen leaves no 
longer. Instead he drew from his pocket an old 
pipe and a paper of tobacco. He filled his pipe 
with care — tobacco was precious; then he began to 
smoke, but his face now looked old and brooding 
through the rank blue vapor. Winter was coming, 
and he had not a shelter. He had not money enough 
to keep him long from starvation. He knew not 
how to obtain employment. He thought vaguely of 
wood-piles, of cutting winter fuel for people. His 
mind traveled in a trite strain of reasoning. Some- 
how wood-piles seemed the only available tasks for 
men of his sort. 

Presently he finished his filled pipe, and arose 
with an air of decision. He went at a brisk pace 
out of the wood and was upon the road again. He 
progressed like a man with definite business in view 
until he reached a house. It was a large white 

246 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

farm-house with manj' outbuildings. It looked most 
promising. He approached the side door, and a 
dog sprang from around a comer and barked, but 
he spoke, and the dog's tail became eloquent. He 
was patting the dog, when the door opened and a 
man stood looking at him. Immediately the taint 
of the prison became evident. He had not cringed 
before the dog, but he did cringe before the man 
who Hved in that fine white house, and who had 
never known what it was to be deprived of liberty. 
He hung his head, he mumbled. The house-owner, 
who was older than he, was sUghtly deaf. He 
looked him over curtly. The end of it was he was 
ordered off the premises, and went; but the dog 
trailed, wagging at his heels, and had to be roughly 
called back. The thought of the dog comforted 
Stebbins as he went on his way. He had always 
hked animals. It was something, now he was past 
a hand-shake, to have the friendly wag of a dog's 
tail. 

The next house was an ornate little cottage with 
bay-windows, through which could be seen the flower 
patterns of lace draperies; the Virginia creeper 
which grew over the house walls was turning crim- 
son in places. Stebbins went around to the back 
door and knocked, but nobody came. He waited 
a long time, for he had spied a great pile of uncut 
wood. Finallv he slunk around to the front door. 
As he went he suddenly reflected upon his state of 
mind in da} s gone by; if he could have known that 
the time would come when he, Joseph Stebbins, 
would feel culpable at approaching any front door! 

247 



THE COPY-CAT 

He touched the electric bell and stood close to the 
door, so that he might not be discovered from the 
windows. Presently the door opened the length 
of a chain, and a fair girlish head appeared. She 
was one of the girls who had been terrified by him 
in the woods, but that he did not know. Now again 
her eyes dilated and her pretty mouth rounded! 
She gave a little cry and slammed the door in his 
face, and he heard excited voices. Then he saw two 
pale, pretty faces, the faces of the two girls who had 
come upon him in the wood, peering at him around 
a corner of the lace in the bay-window, and he under- 
stood what it meant — that he was an object of ter- 
ror to them. Directly he experienced such a sense 
of mortal insult as he had never known, not even 
when the law had taken hold of him. He held his 
head high and went away, his very soul boiling with 
a sort of shamed rage. "Those two girls are afraid 
of me," he kept saying to himself. His knees shook 
with the horror of it. This terror of him seemed the 
hardest thing to bear in a hard life. He returned 
to his green nook beside the brook and sat down 
again. He thought for the moment no more of wood- 
piles, of his life. He thought about those two young 
girls who had been afraid of him. He had never had 
an impulse to harm any living thing. A curious 
hatred toward these living things who had accused 
him of such an impulse came over him. He laughed 
sardonically. He wished that they would again 
come and peer at him through the bushes; he would 
make a threatening motion for the pleasure of seeing 
the silly things scuttle away. 

248 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

After a while he put it all out of mind, and again 
returned to his problem. He lay beside the brook 
and pondered, and finally fell asleep in the hot air, 
which increased in venom, until the rattle of thun- 
der awoke him. It was very dark — a strange, livid 
darkness. "A thunder-storm," he muttered, and 
then he thought of his new clothes — ^what a mis- 
fortune it would be to have them soaked. He arose 
and pushed through the thicket around him into a 
cart path, and it was then that he saw the thing 
which proved to be the stepping-stone toward his 
humble fortimes. It was only a small silk umbrella 
with a handle tipped with pearl. He seized upon it 
with joy, for it meant the salvation of his precious 
clothes. He opened it and held it over his head, 
although the rain had not yet begun. One rib of 
the umbrella was broken, but it was still serviceable. 
He hastened along the cart path; he did not know 
why, only the need for motion, to reach protection 
from the storm, was upon him; and yet what pro- 
tection could be ahead of him in that woodland 
path ? Afterward he grew to think of it as a blind 
instinct which led him on. 

He had not gone far, not more than half a mile, 
when he saw something unexpected— a small un- 
tenanted house. He gave vent to a little cry of joy, 
which had in it something child-like and pathetic, 
and pushed open the door and entered. It was 
nothing but a tiny, unfinished shack, with one room 
and a small one opening from it. There was no 
ceiling; overhead was the tent-like slant of the 
roof, but it was tight. The dusty floor was quite 

249 



THE COPY-CAT 

dry. There was one rickety chair. Stebbins, after 
looking into the other room to make sure that the 
place was empty, sat down, and a wonderful wave 
of content and self-respect came over him. The 
poor human snail had found his shell; he had a 
habitation, a roof of shelter. The little dim place 
immediately assumed an aspect of home. The rain 
came down in torrents, the thunder crashed, the 
place was filled with blinding blue lights. Stebbins 
filled his pipe more lavishly this time, tilted his 
chair against the wall, smoked, and gazed about 
him with pitiful content. It was really so little, 
but to him it was so much. He nodded with satis- 
faction at the discovery of a fireplace and a rusty 
cooking-stove. 

He sat and smoked until the storm passed over. 
The rainfall had been very heavy, there had been 
hail, but the poor little house had not failed of per- 
fect shelter. A fairly cold wind from the northwest 
blew through the door. The hail had brought about 
a change of atmosphere. The burning heat was 
gone. The night would be cool, even chilly. 

Stebbins got up and examined the stove and the 
pipe. They were rusty, but appeared trustworthy. 
He went out and presently returned with some fuel 
which he had found unwet in a thick growth of 
wood. He laid a fire handily and lit it. The little 
stove burned well, with no smoke. Stebbins looked 
at it, and was perfectly happy. He had found other 
treasures outside — a small vegetable-garden in which 
were potatoes and some corn. A man had squatted 
in this Httle shack for years, and had raised his own 

250 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

garden-truck. He had died only a few weeks ago, 
and his furniture had been pre-empted with the ex- 
ception of the stove, the chair, a tilting lounge in 
the small room, and a few old iron pots and frying- 
pans. Stebbins gathered corn, dug potatoes, and 
put them on the stove to cook, then he hurried out 
to the village store and bought a few slices of bacon, 
half a dozen eggs, a quarter of a pound of cheap tea, 
and some salt. When he re-entered the house he 
looked as he had not for }ears. He was beaming. 
"Come, this is a palace," he said to himself, and 
chuckled with pure joy. He had come out of the 
awful empty spaces of homeless life into home. He 
was a man who had naturally strong domestic in- 
stincts. If he had spent the best years of his life 
in a home instead of a prison, the finest in him would 
have been developed. As it was, this was not even 
now too late. ^Mien he had cooked his bacon and 
eggs and brewed his tea, when the vegetables were 
done and he was seated upon the rickety chair, with 
his supper spread before him on an old board propped 
on sticks, he was supremely happy. He ate with a 
relish which seemed to reach his soul. He was at 
home, and eating, literally, at his own board. As 
he ate he glanced from time to time at the two win- 
dows, with broken panes of glass and curtainless. 
He was not afraid — that was nonsense; he had 
never been a cowardly man, but he felt the need of 
curtains or something before his windows to shut 
out the broad vast face of nature, or perhaps prying 
human e^es. Somebody might espy the light in the 
house and wonder. He had a candle stuck in an old 

2;i 



THE COPY-CAT 

bottle by way of illumination. Still, although he 
would have preferred to have curtains before those 
windows full of the blank stare of night, he was 
supremely happy. 

After he had finished his supper he looked long- 
ingly at his pipe. He hesitated for a second, for he 
realized the necessity of saving his precious tobacco; 
then he became reckless: such enormous good for- 
tune as a home must mean more to follow; it must 
be the first of a series of happy things. He filled 
his pipe and smoked. Then he went to bed on the 
old couch in the other room, and slept like a child 
until the sun shone through the trees in flickering 
lines. Then he rose, went out to the brook which 
ran near the house, splashed himself with water, 
returned to the house, cooked the remnant of the 
eggs and bacon, and ate his breakfast with the same 
exultant peace with which he had eaten his supper 
the night before. Then he sat down in the doorway 
upon the sunken sill and fell again to considering 
his main problem. He did not smoke. His tobacco 
was nearly exhausted and he was no longer reckless. 
His head was not turned now by the feeling that 
he was at home. He considered soberly as to the 
probable owner of the house and whether he would 
be allowed to remain its tenant. Very soon, how- 
ever, his doubt concerning that was set at rest. He 
saw a disturbance of the shadows cast by the thick 
boughs over the cart path by a long outreach of 
darker shadow which he knew at once for that of a 
man. He sat upright, and his face at first assumed 
a defiant, then a pleading expression, like that of a 

252 



THE UiMBRELLA MAN 

child who desires to retain possession of some dear 
thing. His heart beat hard as he watched the ad- 
vance of the shadow. It was slow, as if cast by an 
old man. The man was old and very stout, sup- 
porting one lopping side by a stick, who presently 
followed the herald of his shadow. He looked like 
a farmer. Stebbins rose as he approached; the two 
men stood staring at each other. 

"Who be you, neighbor?" inquired the new- 
comer. 

The voice essayed a roughness, but only achieved 
a tentative friendliness. Stebbins hesitated for a 
second; a suspicious look came into the farmer's 
misty blue eyes. Then Stebbins, mindful of his 
prison record and fiercely covetous of his new home, 
gave another name. The name of his maternal 
grandfather seemed suddenly to loom up in printed 
characters before his eyes, and he gave it glibly. 
"David ^Anderson," he said, and he did not realize 
a lie. Suddenly the name seemed his own. Surely 
old David Anderson, who had been a good man, 
would not grudge the gift of his unstained name to 
replace the stained one of his grandson. "David 
Anderson," he replied, and looked the other man 
in the face unflinchingly. 

"Where do ye hail from?" inquired the farmer; 
and the new David Anderson gave unhesitatingly 
the name of the old David Anderson's birth and 
life and death place — that of a httle village in New 
Hampshire. 

"What do you do for your living?" was the next 
question, and the new David Anderson had an in- 

^53 



THE COPY-CAT 

spiration. His eyes had lit upon the umbrella which 
he had found the night before. 

"Umbrellas," he replied, laconically, and the 
other man nodded. Men with sheaves of umbrellas, 
mended or in need of mending, had always been 
familiar features for him. 

Then David assumed the initiative; possessed 
of an honorable business as well as home, he grew 
bold. "Any objection to my staying here.?" he 
asked. 

The other man eyed him sharply. "Smoke 
much.?" he inquired. 

"Smoke a pipe sometimes." 

"Careful with your matches?" 

David nodded. 

"That's all I think about," said the farmer. 
"These woods is apt to catch fire jest when I'm 
about ready to cut. The man that squatted here 
before — he died about a month ago— didn't smoke. 
He was careful, he was." 

"I'll be real careful," said David, humbly and 
anxiously. 

"I dun'no' as I have any objections to your stay- 
ing, then," said the farmer. "Somebody has always 
squat here. A man built this shack about twenty 
year ago, and he lived here till he died. Then 
t'other feller he came along. Reckon he must have 
had a little money; didn't work at nothin'! Raised 
some garden-truck and kept a few chickens. I took 
them home after he died. You can have them now 
if you want to take care of them. He rigged up 
that little chicken-coop back there." 

254 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

"I'll take care of them," answered David, fer- 
vently. 

"Well, you can come over by and by and get 'em. 
There's nine hens and a rooster. They lay pretty 
well. I ain't no use for 'em. I've got all the hens 
of my own I want to bother with." 

"x\ll right," said David. He looked blissful. 

The farmer stared past him into the house. He 
spied the solitary umbrella. He grew facetious. 
"Guess the umbrellas was all mended up where 
you come from if you've got down to one," said he. 

David nodded. It was tragically true, that guess. 

"Well, our umbrella got turned last week," said 
the farmer. "I'll give you a job to start on. You 
can stay here as long as you want if you're careful 
about your matches." Again he looked into the 
house. "Guess some boys have been helpin' them- 
selves to the furniture, most of it," he observed. 
"Guess my wife can spare ye another chair, and 
there's an old table out in the corn-house better 
than that one you've rigged up, and I guess she'll 
«ve ye some old bedding so you can be comfortable. 
Got any money?" 

"A little." 

"I don't want any pay for things, and my wife 
won't; didn't mean that; was wonderin' whether 
ye had anything to buy vittles with." 

"Reckon I can manage till I get some work, " 
replied David, a trifle stiffly. He was a man who 
had never lived at another than the state's expense. 

"Don't want ye to be too short, that's all," said 
the other, a little apologetically. 

2SS 



THE COPY-CAT 

"I shall be all right. There are corn and potatoes 
in the garden, anyway." 

"So there be, and one of them hens had better 
be eat. She don't lay. She'll need a good deal of 
b'ihn'. You can have all the wood you want to 
pick up, but I don't want any cut. You mind that 
or there'll be trouble." 

"I won't cut a stick." 

"Mind ye don't. Folks call me an easy mark, 
and I guess myself I am easy up to a certain point, 
and cuttin' my wood is one of them points. Roof 
didn't leak in that shower last night, did it?" 

"Not a bit." 

"Didn't s'pose it would. The other feller was 
handy, and he kept tinkerin' all the time. Well', 
I'll be goin'; you can stay here and welcome if 
you're careful about matches and don't cut my wood. 
Come over for them hens any time you want to. 
I'll let my hired man drive you back in the wagon." 

"Much obliged," said David, with an inflection 
that was almost tearful. 

"You're welcome," said the other, and ambled 
away. 

The new David Anderson, the good old grand- 
father revived in his unfortunate, perhaps graceless 
grandson, reseated himself on the door-step and 
watched the bulky, receding figure of his visitor 
through a pleasant blur of tears, which made the 
broad, rounded shoulders and the halting columns of 
legs dance. This David Anderson had almost for- 
gotten that there was unpaid kindness in the whole 
world, and it seemed to him as if he had seen angels 

^S6 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

walking up and down. He sat for a while doing 
nothing except reahzing happiness of the present 
and of the future. He gazed at the green spread 
of forest boughs, and saw in pleased anticipation 
their red and gold tints of autumn; also in pleased 
anticipation their snow^- and icy mail of winter, 
and himself, the unmailed, defenseless human crea- 
ture, housed and sheltered, sitting before his 
own fire. This last happy outlook aroused him. 
If all this was to be, he must be up and doing. 
He got up, entered the house, and examined the 
broken umbrella which was his sole stock in trade. 
David was a handy man. He at once knew that 
he was capable of putting it in perfect repair. 
Strangely enough, for his sense of right and wrong 
was not blunted, he had no compunction whatever 
in keeping this umbrella, although he was reasonably 
certain that it belonged to one of the two \oung 
girls who had been so terrified b}- him. He had a con- 
viction that this monstrous terror of theirs, which 
had hurt him more than many apparently cruder 
things, made them quits. 

After he had washed his dishes in the brook, and 
left them in the sun to dry, he went to the A-illage 
store and purchased a few simple things necessary 
for umbrella-mending. Both on his way to the store 
and back he kept his e3-es open. He realized that 
his capital depended largely upon chance and good 
luck. He considered that he had extraordinary 
good luck when he returned with three more umbrel- 
las. He had discovered one propped against the 
counter of the store, turned inside out. He had in- 

^ '""7 

17 -3/ 



THE COPY-CAT 

quired to whom it belonged, and had been answered 
to anybody who wanted it. David had seized upon 
it with secret glee. Then, unheard-of good fortune, 
he had found two more umbrellas on his way home; 
one was in an ash-can, the other blowing along like 
a belated bat beside the trolley track. It began to 
seem to David as if the earth might be strewn with 
abandoned umbrellas. Before he began his work 
he went to the farmer's and returned in triumph, 
driven in the farm-wagon, with his cackling hens 
and quite a load of household furniture, besides 
some bread and pies. The farmer's wife was one of 
those who are able to give, and make receiving 
greater than giving. She had looked at David, 
who was older than she, with the eyes of a mother, 
and his pride had melted away, and he had held out 
his hands for her benefits, hke a child who has no 
compunctions about receiving gifts because he knows 
that they are his right of childhood. 

Henceforth David prospered — in a humble way, 
it is true, still he prospered. He journeyed about 
the country, umbrellas over his shoulder, little bag 
of tools in hand, and reaped an income more than 
sufficient for his simple wants. His hair had grown, 
and also his beard. Nobody suspected his history. 
He met the young girls whom he had terrified on 
the road often, and they did not know him. He 
did not, during the winter, travel very far afield. 
Night always found him at home, warm, well fed, 
content, and at peace. Sometimes the old farmer 
on whose land he lived dropped in of an evening 
and they had a game of checkers. The old man was 

258 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

a checker expert. He played with unusual skill, 
but Da^■id made for himself a little code of honor. 
He would never beat the old man, even if he were 
able, oftener than once out of three evenings. He 
made coffee on these convivial occasions. He made 
very good coffee, and they sipped as they moved 
the men and kings, and the old man chuckled, and 
David beamed with peaceful happiness. 

But the next spring, when he began to realize that 
he had mended for a while all the umbrellas in the 
vicinity and that his trade was flagging, he set his 
precious little home in order, barricaded door and 
windows, and set forth for farther fields. He was 
lucky, as he had been from the start. He found 
plenty of employment, and slept comfortably enough 
in barns, and now and then in the open. He had 
traveled by slow stages for several weeks before he 
entered a tillage whose familiar look gave him a 
shock. It was not his native village, but near it. 
In his younger life he had often journeyed there. 
It was a little shopping emporium, almost a city. 
He recognized building after building. Now and 
then he thought he saw a face which he had once 
known, and he was thankful that there was hardly 
any possibility of any one recognizing him. He had 
grown gaunt and thin since those far-off days; he 
wore a beard, grizzled, as was his hair. In those 
days he had not been an umbrella man. Sometimes 
the humor of the situation struck him. What would 
he have said, he the spruce, plump, head-in-the-air 
yoimg man, if anybody had told him that it would 
come to pass that he would be an umbrella man lurk- 

-59 



THE COPY-CAT 

ing humbly in search of a job around the back doors 
of houses ? He would laugh softly to himself as he 
trudged along, and the laugh would be without the 
slightest bitterness. His lot had been so infinitely 
worse, and he had such a happy nature, yielding 
sweetly to the inevitable, that he saw now only 
cause for amusement. 

He had been in that vicinity about three weeks 
when one day he met the woman. He knew her 
at once, although she was greatly changed. She 
had grown stout, although, poor soul! it seemed as 
if there had been no reason for it. She was not 
unwieldy, but she was stout, and all the contours of 
earlier life had disappeared beneath layers of flesh. 
Her hair was not gray, but the bright brown had 
faded, and she wore it tightly strained back from 
her seamed forehead, although it was thin. One had 
only to look at her hair to realize that she was a 
woman who had given up, who no longer cared. 
She was humbly clad in a blue-cotton wrapper, she 
wore a dingy black hat, and she carried a tin pail 
half full of raspberries. When the man and woman 
met they stopped with a sort of shock, and each 
changed face grew like the other in its pallor. She 
recognized him and he her, but along with that 
recognition was awakened a fierce desire to keep it 
secret. His prison record loomed up before the 
man, the woman's past loomed up before her. She 
had possibly not been guilty of much, but her life 
was nothing to waken pride in her. She felt shamed 
before this man whom she had loved, and who felt 
shamed before her. However, after a second the 

260 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

silence was broken. The man recovered his self- 
possession first. 

He spoke casually. 

"Nice day," said he. 

The woman nodded. 

"Been berrying?" inquired David. The woman 
nodded again. 

David looked scrutinizingly at her pail. "I saw 
better berries real thick a piece back," said he. 

The woman murmured something. In spite of 
herself, a tear trickled over her fat, weather-beaten 
cheek. David saw the tear, and something warm 
and glorious Uke sunlight seemed to waken within 
him. He felt such tenderness and pity for this 
poor feminine thing who had not the strength 
to keep the tears back, and was so pitiably shorn 
of youth and grace, that he himself expanded. He 
had heard in the town something of her history. 
She had made a dreadful marriage, tragedy and 
suspicion had entered her hfe, and the direst poverty. 
However, he had not known that she was in the vi- 
cinity. Somebody had told him she was out West. 

"Living here?" he inquired. 

"Working for my board at a house back there," 
she muttered. She did not tell him that she had 
come as a female "hobo" in a freight-car from the 
Western town where she had been finally stranded. 
"Mrs. White sent me out for berries," she added. 
"She keeps boarders, and there were no berries in 
the market this morning." 

"Come back with me and I will show you where 
I saw the berries real thick," said David. 

261 



THE COPY-CAT 

He turned himself about, and she followed a little 
behind, the female failure in the dust cast by the 
male. Neither spoke until David stopped and 
pointed to some bushes where the fruit hung thick 
on bending, slender branches. 

. "Here," said David. Both fell to work. David 
picked handfuls of berries and cast them gaily into 
the pail. "What is your name.?" he asked, in an 
undertone. 

"Jane Waters," she replied, readily. Her hus- 
band's nams had been Waters, or the man who had 
called himself her husband, and her own middle 
name was Jane. The first was Sara. David remem- 
bered at once. "She is taking her own middle name 
and the name of the man she married," he thought. 
Then he asked, plucking berries, with his eyes averted : 

"Married?" 

"No," said the woman, flushing deeply. 

David's next question betrayed him. "Husband 
dead.?" 

"I haven't any husband," she replied, like the 
Samaritan woman. 

She had married a man already provided with 
another wife, although she had not known it. The 
man was not dead, but she spoke the entire miser- 
able truth when she replied as she did. David as- 
sumed that he was dead. He felt a throb of relief, 
of which he was ashamed, but he could not down it. 
He did not know what it was that was so alive and 
triumphant within him: love, or pity, or the natural 
instinct of the decent male to shelter and protect. 
Whatever it was, it was dominant. 

262 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

"Do you have to work hard?" he asked. 

"Pretty hard, I guess. I expect to." 

"And you don't get any pay?" 

"That's all right; I don't expect to get any," 
said she, and there was bitterness in her voice. 

In spite of her stoutness she was not as strong as 
the man. She was not at all strong, and, moreover, 
the constant presence of a sense of injury at the 
hands of life filled her very soul with a subtle poison, 
to her weakening vitality. She was a child hurt and 
worried and bewildered, although she was to the 
average eye a stout, able-bodied, middle-aged wom- 
an; but David had not the average eye, and he 
saw her as she really was, not as she seemed. There 
had always been about her a little weakness and 
dependency which had appealed to him. Now they 
seemed fairly to cry out to him like the despairing 
voices of the children whom he had never had, and 
he knew he loved her as he had never loved her be- 
fore, with a love which had budded and flowered 
and fruited and survived absence and starvation. 
He spoke abruptly. 

"I've about got my business done in these parts," 
said he. "I've got quite a little money, and I've 
got a little house, not much, but mighty snug, back 
where I come from. There's a garden. It's in the 
woods. Not much passing nor going on." 

The woman was looking at him with incredulous, 
pitiful eyes like a dog's. "I hate much goin' on," 
she whispered. 

"Suppose," said David, "you take those bernes 
home and pack up your things. Got much ?" 

263 



THE COPY-CAT 

"All I've got will go in my bag." 

"Well, pack up; tell the madam where you live 
that you're sorry, but you're worn out — " 

"God knows I am," cried the woman, with sudden 
force, "worn out!" 

"Well, you tell her that, and say you've got an- 
other chance, and — " 

"What do you mean?" cried the woman, and she 
hung upon his words like a drowning thing. 

"Mean? Why, what I mean is this. You pack 
your bag and come to the parson's back there, that 
white house." 

"I know—" 

" In the mean time I'll see about getting a license, 
and—" 

Suddenly the woman set her pail down and 
clutched him by both hands. "Say you are not 
married," she demanded; "say it, swear it!" 

"Yes, I do swear it," said David. "You are the 
only woman I ever asked to marry me. I can sup- 
port you. We sha'n't be rolling in riches, but we 
can be comfortable, and — I rather guess I can make 
you happy." 

"You didn't say what your name was," said the 
woman. 

"David Anderson." 

The woman looked at him with a strange ex- 
pression, the expression of one who loves and re- 
spects, even reveres, the isolation and secrecy of 
another soul. She understood, down to the depths 
of her being she understood. She had lived a hard 
life, she had her faults, but she was fine enough to 

264 




■\\"E SHA N T BE ROLLING IN RICHEj. E LT \\T CAN BE COMFORTABLE' 



THE UMBRELLA MAN 

comprehend and hold sacred another personality. 
She was very pale, but she smiled. Then she turned 
to go. 

"How long will it take you?" asked David. 

"About an hour." 

"All right. I will meet you in front of the par- 
son's house in an hour. We will go back by train. 
I have money enough." 

"I'd just as soon walk." The woman spoke with 
the utmost humility of love and trust. She had 
not even asked where the man lived. All her life 
she had followed him with her soul, and it would 
go hard if her poor feet could not keep pace with 
her soul. 

"No, it is too far; we will take the train. One 
goes at half past four." 

At half past four the couple, made man and wife, 
were on the train speeding toward the little home 
in the woods. The woman had frizzled her thin 
hair pathetically and ridiculously over her temples; 
on her left hand gleamed a white diamond. She had 
kept it hidden; she had almost starved rather than 
part with it. She gazed out of the window at the 
flying landscape, and her thin lips were curved in a 
charming smile. The man sat beside her, staring 
straight ahead as if at happy visions. 

They lived together afterward in the little house 
in the woods, and were happy with a strange crys- 
tallized happiness at which they would have mocked 
in their youth, but which they now recognized as the 
essential of all happiness upon earth. And always 
the woman knew what she knew about her husband, 

26s 



THE COPY-CAT 

and the man knew about his wife, and each recog- 
nized the other as old lover and sweetheart come 
together at last, but always each kept the knowledge 
from the other with an infinite tenderness of deli- 
cacy which was as a perfumed garment veiling the 
innermost sacredness of love. 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 



THE BALKING OF 
CHRISTOPHER 

TPHE spring was eariy that year. It was only 
•■■ the last of March, but the trees were filmed 
with green and paling with promise of bloom; the 
front yards were showing new grass pricking through 
the old. It was high rime to plow the south field 
and the garden, but Christopher sat in his rocking- 
chair beside the kitchen window and gazed out, and 
did absolutely nothing about it. 

Myrtle Dodd, Christopher's wife, washed the 
breakfast dishes, and later kneaded the bread, all 
the time glancing furtively at her husband. She 
had a most old-fashioned deference with regard to 
Christopher. She was always a littie afraid of him. 
Sometimes Christopher's mother, Mrs. Cyrus Dodd, 
and his sister Abby, who had never married, re- 
proached her for this attitude of mind. "You are 
entirely too much cowed down by Christopher," 
Mrs. Dodd said. 

"I would never be under the thumb of any man," 
Abby said. 

"Have you ever seen Christopher in one of his 
spells?" Myrde would ask. 

Then Mrs. Cyrus Dodd and Abby would look 

269 



THE COPY-CAT 

at each other. "It is all your fault, mother," Abby 
would say. "You really ought not to have allowed 
your son to have his own head so much." 

"You know perfectly well, Abby, what I had to 
contend against," replied Mrs. Dodd, and Abby 
became speechless. Cyrus Dodd, now deceased 
some twenty years, had never during his whole life 
yielded to anything but birth and death. Before 
those two primary facts even his terrible will was 
powerless. He had come into the world without 
his consent being obtained; he had passed in like 
manner from it. But during his life he had ruled, 
a petty monarch, but a most thorough one. He had 
spoiled Christopher, and his wife, although a woman 
of high spirit, knew of no appealing. 

"I could never go against your father, you know 
that," said Mrs. Dodd, following up her advantage. 

"Then," said Abby, "you ought to have warned 
poor Myrtle. It was a shame to let her marry a 
man as spoiled as Christopher." 

"I would have married him, anyway," declared 
Myrtle with sudden defiance; and her mother-in- 
law regarded her approvingly. ' 

"There are worse men than Christopher, and 
Myrtle knows it," said she. 

"Yes, I do, mother," agreed Myrtle. "Christo- 
pher hasn't one bad habit." 

"I don't know what you call a bad habit," re- 
torted Abby. "I call having your own way in spite 
of the world, the flesh, and the devil rather a bad 
habit. Christopher tramples on everything in his 
path,andhe always has. He tramples onpoorMyrtle." 

27Q 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

At that Myrtle laughed. "I don't think I look 
trampled on," said she; and she certainly did not. 
Pink and white and plump was Myrtle, although she 
had, to a discerning eye, an expression which denoted 
extreme nervousness. 

This morning of spring, when her husband sat 
doing nothing, she wore this nervous expression. Her 
blue eyes looked dark and keen; her forehead was 
wrinkled; her rosy mouth was set. Myrtle and 
Christopher were not young people; they were a 
little past middle age, still far from old in look or 
ability. 

Myrtle had kneaded the bread to rise for the 
last time before it was put into the oven, and had 
put on the meat to boil for dinner, before she dared 
address that silent figure which had about it some- 
thing tragic. Then she spoke in a small voice. 
"Christopher," said she. 

Christopher made no reply. 

"It is a good morning to plow, ain't it?" said 
Myrtle. 

Christopher was silent. 

"Jim Mason got over real early; I suppose he 
thought you'd want to get at the south field. He's 
been sitting there at the bam door for 'most two 
hours." 

Then Christopher rose. Myrtle's anxious face 
lightened. But to her wonder her husband went 
into the front entry and got his best hat. "He 
ain't going to wear his best hat to plow," thought 
Myrtle. For an awful moment it occurred to her 
that something had suddenly gone wrong with her 

271 



THE COPY-CAT 

husband's mind. Christopher brushed the hat care- 
fully, adjusted it at the little looking-glass in the 
kitchen, and went out. 

"Be you going to plow the south field?" Myrtle 
said, faintly. 

"No, I ain't." 

"Will you be back to dinner?" 

"I don't know — you needn't worry if I'm not." 
Suddenly Christopher did an unusual thing for him. 
He and Myrtle had lived together for years, and out- 
ward manifestations of affection were rare between 
them. He put his arm around her and kissed her. 

After he had gone. Myrtle watched him out of 
sight down the road; then she sat down and wept. 
Jim Mason came slouching around from his station 
at the barn door. He surveyed Myrtle uneasily. 

"Mr. Dodd sick?" said he at length. 

"Not that I know of," said Myrtle, in a weak 
quaver. She rose and, keeping her tear-stained face 
aloof, lifted the lid off the kettle on the stove. 

"D'ye know am he going to plow to-day?" 

"He said he wasn't." 

Jim grunted, shifted his quid, and slouched out of 
the yard. 

Meantime Christopher Dodd went straight down 
the road to the minister's, the Rev. Stephen Wheaton. 
When he came to the south field, which he was 
neglecting, he glanced at it turning emerald upon 
the gentle slopes. He set his face harder. Christo- 
pher Dodd's face was in any case hard-set. Now 
it was tragic, to be pitied, but warily, lest it turn 
fiercely upon the one who pitied. Christopher was 

272 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

a handsome man, and his face had an almost classic 
turn of feature. His forehead was noble; his eyes 
full of keen light. He was only a farmer, but in 
spite of his rude clothing he had the face of a man 
who followed one of the professions. He was in 
sore trouble of spirit, and he was going to consult 
the minister and ask him for advice. Christopher 
had never done this before. He had a sort of in- 
credulity now that he was about to do it. He had 
always associated that sort of thing with womankind, 
and not with men like himself. And, moreover, 
Stephen Wheaton was a younger man than himself. 
He was unmarried, and had only been settled in the 
village for about a year. "He can't think I'm com- 
ing to set my cap at him, anyway," Christopher 
reflected, with a sort of grim humor, as he drew 
near the parsonage. The minister was haunted by 
marriageable ladies of the village. 

"Guess you are glad to see a man coming, instead 
of a woman who has doubts about some doctrine," 
was the first thing Christopher said to the minister 
when he had been admitted to his study. The 
study was a small room, lined with books, and only 
one picture hung over the fireplace, the portrait of 
the minister's mother — Stephen was so like her that 
a question concerning it was futile. 

Stephen colored a little angrily at Christopher's 
remark — he was a hot-tempered man, although a 
clergyman; then he asked him to be seated. 

Christopher sat down opposite the minister. "I 
oughtn't to have spoken so," he apologized, "but 
what I am doing ain't like me." 

18 273 



THE COPY-CAT 

"That's all right," said Stephen. He was a short, 
athletic man, with an extraordinary width of shoul- 
ders and a strong-featured and ugly face, still indica- 
tive of goodness and a strange power of sympathy. 
Three little mongrel dogs were sprawled about the 
study. One, small and alert, came and rested his 
head on Christopher's knee. Animals all liked him. 
Christopher mechanically patted him. Patting an 
appealing animal was as unconscious with the man 
as drawing his breath. But he did not even look at 
the little dog while he stroked it after the fashion 
which pleased it best. He kept his large, keen, 
melancholy eyes fixed upon the minister; at length 
he spoke. He did not speak with as much eagerness 
as he did with force, bringing the whole power of 
his soul into his words, which were the words of a 
man in rebellion against the greatest odds on earth 
and in all creation — the odds of fate itself. 

"I have come to say a good deal, Mr. Wheaton," 
he began. 

"Then say it, Mr. Dodd," replied Stephen, without 
a smile. 

Christopher spoke. "I am going back to the very 
beginning of things," said he, "and maybe you will 
think it blasphemy, but I don't mean it for that. 
I mean it for the truth, and the truth which is too 
much for my comprehension." 

"I have heard men swear when it did not seem 
blasphemy to me," said Stephen. 

"Thank the Lord, you ain't so deep in your rut 
you can't see the stars!" said Christopher. "But 
I guess you see them in a pretty black sky sometimes. 

274 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

In the beginning, wh}' did I have to come into the 
world \yithout any choice?" 

"You must not ask a question of me which can 
only be answered by the Lord," said Stephen. 

"I am asking the Lord," said Christopher, with 
his sad, forceful voice. "I am asking the Lord, and 
I ask why ?" 

"You have no right to expect your question to be 
answered in your time," said Stephen. 

"But here am I," said Christopher, "and I was 
a question to the Lord from the first, and fifty years 
and more I have been on the earth." 

" Fifty 3'ears and more are nothing for the answer 
to such a question," said Stephen. 

Christopher looked at him with mournful dissent; 
there was no anger about him. "There was time 
before time," said he, "before the fifty years and 
more began. I don't mean to blaspheme, Mr. 
Wheaton, but it is the truth. I came into the world 
whether I would or not; I was forced, and then I was 
told I was a free agent. I am no free agent. For 
fifty years and more I have thought about it, and 
I have found out that, at least. I am a slave — a 
slave of life." 

"For that matter," said Stephen, looking curi- 
ously at him, "so am I. So are we all." 

"That makes it worse," agreed Christopher — "a 
whole world of slaves. I know I ain't talking in 
exacdy what you might call an orthodox strain. I 
have got to a point when it seems to me I shall go 
mad if I don't talk to somebody. I know there is that 
awful why, and you can't answer it; and no man 

275 



THE COPY-CAT 

living can. I'm willing to admit that sometime, in 
another world, that why will get an answer, but 
meantime it's an awful thing to Hve in this world 
without it if a man has had the kind of life I have. 
My Ufe has been harder for me than a harder life 
might be for another man who was different. That 
much I know. There is one thing I've got to be 
thankful for. I haven't been the means of sending 
any more slaves into this world. I am glad my wife 
and I haven't any children to ask 'why.?' 

"Now, I've begun at the beginning; I'm going on. 
I have never had what men call luck. My folks 
were poor; father and mother were good, hard- 
working people, but they had nothing but trouble, 
sickness, and death, and losses by fire and flood. 
We lived near the river, and one spring our house 
went, and every stick we owned, and much as ever 
we all got out alive. Then lightning struck father's 
new house, and the insurance company had failed, 
and we never got a dollar of insurance. Then my 
oldest brother died, just when he was getting started 
in business, and his widow and two little children 
came on father to support. Then father got rheu- 
matism, and was all twisted, and wasn't good for 
much afterward; and my sister Sarah, who had been 
expecting to get married, had to give it up and take 
in sewing and stay at home and take care of the 
rest. There was father and George's widow — she 
was never good for much at work — and mother and 
Abby. She was my youngest sister. As for me, I 
had a liking for books and wanted to get an educa- 
tion; might just as well have wanted to get a seat 

276 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

on a throne. I went to work in the grist-mill of the 
place where we used to live when I was only a boy. 
Then, before I was twenty, I saw that Sarah wasn't 
going to hold out. She had grieved a good deal, 
poor thing, and worked too hard, so we sold out 
and came here and bought my farm, with the mort- 
gage hitching it, and I went to work for dear life. 
Then Sarah died, and then father. Along about then 
there was a girl I wanted to marry, but, Lord, how 
could I even ask her.? My farm started in as a 
failure, and it has kept it up ever since. When there 
wasn't a drought there was so much rain everything 
mildewed; there was a hail-storm that cut every- 
thing to pieces, and there was the caterpillar year. 
I just managed to pay the interest on the mortgage; 
as for paying the principal, I might as well have tried 
to pay the national debt. 

"Well, to go back to that girl. She is married 
and don't live here, and you ain't like ever to see 
her, but she was a beauty and something more. I 
don't suppose she ever looked twice at me, but 
losing what you've never had sometimes is worse 
than losing everything you've got. When she got 
married I guess I knew a little about what the 
martyrs went through. 

"Just after that George's widow got married again 
and went away to live. It took a burden off the 
rest of us, but I had got attached to the children. 
The little girl, Ellen, seemed 'most like my own. 
Then poor Myrtle came here to live. She did 
dressmaking and boarded with our folks, and I 
begun to see that she was one of the nervous sort of 

277 



THE COPY-CAT 

women who are pretty bad off alone in the world, 
and I told her about the other girl, and she said she 
didn't mind, and we got married. By that time 
mother's brother John — he had never got married — ■ 
died and left her a little money, so she and my sister 
Abby could screw along. They bought the little 
house they live in and left the farm, for Abby was 
always hard to get along with, though she is a 
good woman. Mother, though she is a smart woman, 
is one of the sort who don't feel called upon to inter- 
fere much with men-folks. I guess she didn't inter- 
fere any too much for my good, or father's, either. 
Father was a set man. I guess if mother had been a 
little harsh with me I might not have asked that 
awful 'why?' I guess I might have taken my bitter 
pills and held my tongue, but I won't blame myself 
on poor mother. 

"Myrtle and I get on well enough. She seems 
contented — she has never said a word to make me 
think she wasn't. She isn't one of the kind of 
women who want much besides decent treatment 
and a home. Myrtle is a good woman. I am sorry 
for her that she got married to me, for she deserved 
somebody who could make her a better husband. 
All the time, every waking minute, I've been growing 
more and more rebellious. 

"You see, Mr. Wheaton, never in this world have 
I had what I wanted, and more than wanted — 
needed, and needed far more than happiness. I 
have never been able to think of work as anything 
but a way to get money, and it wasn't right, not 
for a man like me, with the feelings I was born with. 

278 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

And everything has gone wrong even about the 
work for the money. I have been hampered and 
hindered, I don't know whether by Providence or 
the Evil One. I have saved just six hundred and 
forty dollars, and I have only paid the interest on 
the mortgage. I knew I ought to have a little ahead 
in case Myrtle or I got sick, so I haven't tried to 
pay the mortgage, but put a few dollars at a time 
in the savings-bank, which will come in handy now." 

The minister regarded him uneasily. "What," he 
asked, "do you mean to do?" 

"I mean," replied Christopher, "to stop trying to 
do what I am hindered in doing, and do just once in 
my life what I want to do. Myrtle asked me this 
morning if I wasn't going to plow the south field. 
Well, I ain't going to plow the south field. I ain't 
going to make a garden. I ain't going to try for 
hay in the ten-acre lot. I have stopped. I have 
worked for nothing except just enough to keep soul 
and body together. I have had bad luck. But that 
isn't the real reason why I have stopped. Look at 
here, Mr. Wheaton, spring is coming. I have never 
in my life had a chance at the spring nor the summer. 
This year I'm going to have the spring and the sum- 
mer, and the fall, too, if I want it. My apples may 
fall and rot if they want to. I am going to get as 
much good of the season as they do." 

"What are you going to do.?" asked Stephen. 

"Well, I will tell you. I ain't a man to make 
mystery if I am doing right, and I think I am. You 
know, I've got a little shack up on Silver Mountain 
in the little sugar-orchard I own there; never got 

279 



THE COPY-CAT 

enough sugar to say so, but I put up the shack one 
year when I was fool enough to think I might get 
something. Well, I'm going up there, and I'm going 
to live there awhile, and I'm going to sense the 
things I have had to hustle by for the sake of a 
few dollars and cents." 

"But what will your wife do.?" 

"She can have the money I've saved, all except 
enough to buy me a few provisions. I sha'n't need 
much. I want a little corn meal, and I will have a 
few chickens, and there is a barrel of winter apples 
left over that she can't use, and a few potatoes. 
There is a spring right near the shack, and there are 
trout-pools, and by and by there will be berries, 
and there's plenty of fire-wood, and there's an old 
bed and a stove and a few things in the shack. 
Now, I'm going to the store and buy what I want, 
and I'm going to fix it so Myrtle can draw the money 
when she wants it, and then I am going to the 
shack, and"^ — Christopher's voice took on a solemn 
tone — ^"I will tell you in just a few words the gist 
of what I am going for. I have never in my life 
had enough of the bread of life to keep my soul 
nourished. I have tried to do my duties, but I believe 
sometimes duties act on the soul like weeds on a 
flower. They crowd it out. I am going up on Silver 
Mountain to get once, on this earth, my fill of the 
bread of life." 

Stephen Wheaton gasped. "But your wife, she 
will be alone, she will worry." 

"I want you to go and tell her," said Christopher, 
"and I've got my bank-book here; I'm going to 

280 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

write some checks that she can get cashed when she 
needs money. I want you to tell her. Myrtle won't 
make a fuss. She ain't the kind. Maybe she will 
be a little lonely, but if she is, she can go and visit 
somewhere." Christopher rose. "Can you let me 
have a pen and ink?" said he, "and I will write 
those checks. You can tell Myrtle how to use 
them. She won't know how." 

Stephen Wheaton, an hour later, sat in his study, 
the checks in his hand, striving to rally his courage. 
Christopher had gone; he had seen him from his 
window, laden with parcels, starting upon the ascent 
of Silver Mountain. Christopher had made out 
many checks for small amounts, and Stephen held 
the sheaf in his hand, and gradually his courage 
to arise and go and tell Christopher's wife gained 
strength. At last he went. 

Myrtle was looking out of the window, and she 
came quickly to the door. She looked at him, her 
round, pretty face gone pale, her plump hands 
twitching at her apron. 

"What is it?" said she. 

"Nothing to be alarmed about," replied Stephen. 

Then the two entered the house. Stephen found 
his task unexpectedly easy. Myrtle Dodd was an 
unusual woman in a usual place. 

"It is all right for my husband to do as he pleases," 
she said with an odd dignity, as if she were defending 
him. 

"Mr. Dodd is a strange man. He ought to have 
been educated and led a different life," Stephen said, 
lamely, for he reflected that the words might be 

281 



THE COPY-CAT 

hard for the woman to hear, since she seemed obvi- 
ously quite fitted to her life, and her life to her. 

But Myrtle did not take it hardly, seemingly rather 
with pride. "Yes," said she, "Christopher ought 
to have gone to college. He" had the head for it. 
Instead of that he has just stayed round here, and 
dogged round the farm, and everything has gone 
wrong lately. He hasn't had any luck even with 
that." Then poor Myrtle Dodd said an unexpectedly 
wise thing. "But maybe," said Myrtle, "his bad 
luck may turn out the best thing for him in the end." 

Stephen was silent. Then he began explaining 
about the checks. 

"I sha'n't use any more of his savings than I can 
help," said Myrtle, and for the first time her voice 
quavered. "He must have some clothes up there," 
said she. "There ain't bed-coverings, and it is 
cold nights, late as it is in the spring. I wonder 
how I can get the bedclothes and other things to 
him. I can't drive, myself, and I don't like to hire 
anybody; aside from its being an expense, it would 
make talk. Mother Dodd and Abby won't make 
talk outside the family, but I suppose it will have 
to be known." 

"Mr. Dodd didn't want any mystery made over 
it," Stephen Wheaton said. 

"There ain't going to be any mystery. Christo- 
pher has got a right to live awhile on Silver Mountain 
if he wants to," returned Myrtle with her odd, 
defiant air. 

" But I will take the things up there to him, if you 
will let me have a horse and wagon," said Stephen. 

282 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

"I will, and be glad. When will you go?" 
1 o-morrow. 

"I'll have them ready," said Myrtle. 

After the minister had gone she went into her 
own bedroom and cried a little and made the moan 
of a loving woman sadly bewildered by the ways 
of man, but loyal as a soldier. Then she dried 
her tears and began to pack a load for the 
wagon. 

The next morning early, before the dew was off 
the young grass, Stephen Wheaton started with the 
wagon-load, driving the great gray farm-horse up 
the side of Silver Mountain. The road was fairly 
good, making many winds in order to avoid steep 
ascents, and Stephen drove slowly. The gray farm- 
horse was sagacious. He knew that an unaccustomed 
hand held the lines; he knew that of a right he should 
be treading the plowshares instead of climbing a 
mountain on a beautiful spring morning. 

But as for the man driving, his face was radiant, 
his eyes of young manhood lit with the light of the 
morning. He had not owned it, but he himself had 
sometimes chafed under the dull necessity of his life, 
but here was excitement, here was exhilaration. He 
drew the sweet air into his lungs, and the deeper 
meaning of the spring morning into his soul. Christo- 
pher Dodd interested him to the point of enthusiasm. 
Not even the uneasy consideration of the lonely, 
mystified woman in Dodd's deserted home could 
deprive him of admiration for the man's flight into 
the spiritual open. He felt that these rights of the 
man were of the highest, and that other rights, even 

283 



THE COPY-CAT 

human and pitiful ones, should give them the right 
of way. 

It was not a long drive. When he reached the 
shack — merely a one-roomed hut, with a stove- 
pipe chimney, two windows, and a door — Christo- 
pher stood at the entrance and seemed to illuminate 
it. Stephen for a minute doubted his identity. 
Christopher had lost middle age in a day's time. 
He had the look of a triumphant youth. Blue smoke 
was curUng from the chimney. Stephen smelled 
bacon frying, and coffee. 

Christopher greeted him with the joyousness of 
a child. "Lord!" said he, "did Myrtle send^you up 
with all those things? Well, she is a good woman. 
Guess I would have been cold last night if I hadn't 
been so happy. How is Myrtle .?" 

"She seemed to take it very sensibly when I told 
her." 

Christopher nodded happily and lovingly. "She 
would. She can understand not understanding, and 
that is more than most women can. It was mighty 
good of you to bring the things. You are in time 
for breakfast. Lord! Mr. Wheaton, smell the trees, 
and there are blooms hidden somewhere that smell 
sweet. Think of having the common food of man 
sweetened this way! First time I fully sensed I was 
something more than just a man. Lord, I am paid 
already. It won't be so very long before I get my 
fill, at this rate, and then I can go back. To think 
I needn't plow to-day! To think all I have to do 
is to have the spring! See the light under those 
trees!" 

284 




FIRST TIME I FLLLV SENSED I «'AS SOMETHING MORE THAN | L ST 

A man" 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

Christopher spoke Uke a man in ecstasy. He tied 
the gray horse to a tree and brought a pail of water 
for him from the spring near by. 

Then he said to Stephen: "Come right in. The 
bacon's done, and the coffee and the corn-cake and 
the eggs won't take a minute." 

The two men entered the shack. There was noth- 
ing there except the Httle cooking-stove, a few 
kitchen utensils hung on pegs on the walls, an old 
table vrith a few dishes, two chairs, and a loimge 
over which was spread an ancient buffalo-skin. 

Stephen sat down, and Christopher fried the eggs. 
Then he bade the minister draw up, and the two 
men breakfasted. 

"Ain't it great, Mr. Wheaton?" said Christopher. 

"You are a famous cook, Mr. Dodd," laughed 
Stephen. He was thoroughly enjoying himself, and 
the breakfast was excellent. 

"It ain't that," declared Christopher in his ex- 
alted voice. "It ain't that, young man. It's be- 
cause the food is blessed." 

Stephen stayed all day on Silver Mountain. He 
and Christopher went fishing, and had fried trout for 
dinner. He took some of the trout home to Myrtle. 

Myrtle received them with a sort of state which 
defied the imputation of sadness. "Did he seem 
comfortable?" she asked. 

"Comfortable, Mrs. Dodd ? I believe it will mean 
a new lease of life to your husband. He is an un- 
common man." 

"Yes, Christopher is uncommon; he always was," 

assented Myrtle. 

28s 



THE COPY-CAT 

"You have everything you want? You were not 
timid last night alone?" asked the minister. 

"Yes, I was timid. I heard queer noises," said 
Myrtle, "but I sha'n't be alone any more. Chris- 
topher's niece wrote me she was coming to make 
a visit. She has been teaching school, and she lost 
her school. I rather guess Ellen is as uncommon for 
a girl as Christopher is for a man. Any-way, she's 
lost her school, and her brother's married, and she 
don't want to go there. Besides, they live in Boston, 
and Ellen, she says she can't bear the city in spring 
and summer. She wrote she'd saved a little, and 
she'd pay her board, but I sha'n't touch a dollar of 
her little savings, and neither would Christopher 
want me to. He's always thought a sight of Ellen, 
though he's never seen much of her. As for me, I 
was so glad when her letter came I didn't know 
what to do. Christopher will be glad. I suppose 
you'll be going up there to see him off and 
on." Myrtle spoke a bit wistfully, and Ste- 
phen did not tell her he had been urged to come 
often. 

"Yes, off and on," he replied. 

"If you will just let me know when you are going, 
I will see that you have something to take to him 
— some bread and pies." 

"He has some chickens there," said Stephen. 

"Has he got a coop for them?" 

"Yes, he had one rigged up. He will have plenty 
of eggs, and he carried up bacon and corn meal and 
tea and coffee." 

"I am glad of that," said Myrtle. She spoke with 
286 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

a quiet dignity, but her face never lost its expression 
of bewilderment and resignation. 

The next week Stephen Wheaton carried Myrtle's 
bread and pies to Christopher on his mountainside. 
He drove Christopher's gray horse harnessed in his 
old buggy, and realized that he himself was getting 
much pleasure out of the other man's idiosyncrasy. 
The morning was beautiful, and Stephen carried in 
his mind a pecuhar new beauty, besides. Ellen, 
Christopher's niece, had arrived the night before, 
and, early as it was, she had been astir when he 
reached the Dodd house. She had opened the door 
for him, and she was a goodly sight: a tall girl, 
shaped like a boy, with a fearless face of great beauty 
crowned with compact gold braids and lit by un- 
swerving blue eyes. Ellen had a square, determined 
chin and a brow of high resolve. 

"Good morning," said she, and as she spoke she 
evidentiy rated Stephen and approved, for she smiled 
genially. "I am Mr. Dodd's niece," said she. "You 
are the minister?" 

"Yes." 

"And you have come for the things aunt is to 
send him?" 

"Yes." 

"Aunt said }'OU were to drive uncle's horse and 
take the buggy, " said Ellen. "It is very kind of you. 
While you are harnessing, aunt and I will pack the 
basket." 

Stephen, harnessing the gray horse, had a sense 
of shock; whether pleasant or otherwise, he could 
not determine. He had never seen a gir! in the least 

287 



THE COPY-CAT 

like Ellen. Girls had never impressed him. She 
did. 

When he drove around to the kitchen door she 
and Myrtle were both there, and he drank a cup of 
coffee before starting, and Myrtle introduced him. 
"Only think, Mr. Wheaton," said she, "Ellen says 
she knows a great deal about farming, and we are 
going to hire Jim Mason and go right ahead." 
Myrtle looked adoringly at Ellen. 

Stephen spoke eagerly. "Don't hire anybody," 
he said. "I used to work on a farm to pay my way 
through college. I need the exercise. Let me help." 

"You may do that," said Ellen, "on shares. 
Neither aunt nor I can think of letting you work 
without any recompense." 

"Well, we will settle that," Stephen replied. 
When he drove away, his usually calm mind was in 
a tumult. 

"Your niece has come," he told Christopher, 
when the two men were breakfasting together on 
Silver Mountain. 

"I am glad of that," said Christopher. "All that 
troubled me about being here was that Myrtle might 
wake up in the night and hear noises." 

Christopher had grown even more radiant. He 
was effulgent with pure happiness. 

"You aren't going to tap your sugar-maples?" 
said Stephen, looking up at the great symmetrical 
efflorescence of rose and green which towered about 
them. 

Christopher laughed. "No, bless 'em," said he, 
"the trees shall keep their sugar this season. This 

288 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

week is the first time I've had a chance to get ac- 
quainted with them and sort of enter into their feel- 
ings. Good Lord! I've seen how I can love those 
trees, Mr. Wheaton! See the pink on their young 
leaves! They know more than you and I. They 
know how to grow young every spring." 

Stephen did not tell Christopher how Ellen and 
Myrtle were to work the farm with his aid. The two 
women had bade him not. Christopher seemed to 
have no care whatever about it. He was simply 
happy. When Stephen left, he looked at him and 
said, with the smile of a child, "Do you think I am 
crazy r 

"Crazy? No," replied Stephen. 

"Well, I ain't. I'm just getting fed. I was starv- 
ing to death. Glad you don't think I'm crazy, be- 
cause I couldn't help matters by saying I wasn't. 
Myrtle don't think I am, I know. As for Ellen, I 
haven't seen her since she was a little girl. I don't 
believe she can be much like Myrtle; but I guess if 
she is what she promised to turn out she wouldn't 
think anybody ought to go just her way to have it 
the right way." 

"I rather think she is like that, although I saw 
her for the first time this morning," said Stephen. 

"I begin to feel that I may not need to stay here 
much longer," Christopher called after him. "I 
begin to feel that I am getting what I came for so 
fast that I can go back pretty soon." 

But it was the last day of July before he came. 
He chose the cool of the evening after a burning day, 
and descended the mountain in the full light of the 

19 289 



THE COPY-CAT 

moon. He had gone up the mountain like an old 
man; he came down like a young one. 

When he came at last in sight of his own home, 
he paused and stared. Across the grass-land a 
heavily laden wagon was moving toward his barn. 
Upon this wagon heaped with hay, full of silver 
lights from the moon, sat a tall figure all in white, 
which seemed to shine above all things. Christopher 
did not see the man on the other side of the wagon 
leading the horses; he saw only this wonderful 
white figure. He hurried forward and Myrtle came 
down the road to meet him. She had been watch- 
ing for him, as she had watched every night. 

"Who is it on the load of hay.?" asked Christopher. 

"Ellen," replied Myrtle. 

"Oh!" said Christopher. "She looked like an 
angel of the Lord, come to take up the burden I had 
dropped while I went to learn of Him." 

"Be you feeling pretty well, Christopher.?" asked 
Myrtle. She thought that what her husband had 
said was odd, but he looked well, and he might have 
said it simply because he was a man. 

Christopher put his arm around Myrtle. "I am 
better than I ever was in my whole life. Myrtle, 
and I've got more courage to work now than I had 
when I was young. I had to go away and get rested, 
but I've got rested for all my life. We shall get 
along all right as long as we live." 

"Ellen and the minister are going to get married 
come Christmas," said Myrtle. 

"She is lucky. He is 'a man that can see with the 
eyes of other people," said Christopher. 

290 



THE BALKING OF CHRISTOPHER 

It was after the hay had been unloaded and Chris- 
topher had been shown the garden full of lusty 
vegetables, and told of the great crop with no draw- 
back, that he and the minister had a few minutes 
alone together at the gate. 

"I want to tell you, Mr. Wheaton, that I am 
settled in my mind now. I shall never complain 
again, no matter what happens. I have found that 
all the good things and all the bad things that come 
to a man who tries to do right are just to prove to 
him that he is on the right path. They are just the 
flowers and sunbeams, and the rocks and snakes, 
too, that mark ^e way. And — I have found out 
more than that. I have found out the answer to my 
'why?'" 

"^^^lat is it?" asked Stephen, gazing at him curi- 
ousl}' from the wonder-height of his own special 
happiness. 

"I have fovmd out that the only wa}- to heaven 
for the children of men is through the earth," said 
Christopher. 



DEAR ANNIE 



DEAR ANNIE 

ANNIE HEMPSTEAD lived on a large family 
' canvas, being the eldest of six children. There 
was only one boy. The mother was long since dead. 
If one can imagine the Hempstead family, the head of 
which was the Reverend Silas, pastor of the Orthodox 
Church in Lynn Corners, as being the subject of a 
mild study in village history, the high light would 
probably fall upon Imogen, the youngest daughter. 
As for Annie, she would apparently supply only a 
part of the background. 

This afternoon in late July, Annie was out in the 
front yard of the parsonage, assisting her brother 
Benny to rake hay. Benny had not cut it. Annie 
had hired a man, although the Hemps teads could 
not afford to hire a man, but she had said to Benny, 
"Benny, you can rake the hay and get it into the 
barn if Jim MuUins cuts it, can't you?" And Benny 
had smiled and nodded acquiescence. Benny Hemp- 
stead always smiled and nodded acquiescence, but 
there was in him the strange persistency of a willow 
bough, the persistency of pliabiHty, which is the 
most unconquerable of all. Benny swayed gracefully 
in response to all the wishes of others, but always he 
remained in his own inadequate attitude toward life, 

295 



THE COPY-CAT 

Now he was raking to as little purpose as he could 
and rake at all. The clover-tops, the timothy grass, 
and the buttercups moved before his rake in a faint 
foam of gold and green and rose, but his sister Annie 
raised whirlwinds with hers. The Hempstead yard 
was large and deep, and had two great squares given 
over to wild growths on either side of the gravel walk, 
which was bordered with shrubs, flowering in their 
turn, like a class of children at school saying their 
lessons. The spring shrubs had all spelled out their 
floral recitations, of course, but great clumps of 
peonies were spreading wide skirts of gigantic bloom, 
like dancers courtesying low on the stage of summer, 
and shafts of green-white Yucca lilies and Japan 
lilies and clove-pinks still remained in their school 
of bloom. 

Benny often stood still, wiped his forehead, leaned 
on his rake, and inhaled the bouquet of sweet scents, 
but Annie raked with never-ceasing energy. Annie 
was small and slender and wiry, and moved with 
angular grace, her thin, peaked elbows showing be- 
neath the sleeves of her pink gingham dress, her thin 
knees outlining beneath the scanty folds of the skirt. 
Her neck was long, her shoulder-blades troubled the 
back of her blouse at every movement. She was a 
creature full of ostentatious joints, but the joints 
were delicate and rhythmical and charming. Annie 
had a charming face, too. It was thin and sun- 
burnt, but still charming, with a sweet, eager, intent- 
to-please outlook upon life. This last was the real 
attitude of Annie's mind; it was, in fact, Annie. She 
was intent to please from her toes to the crown of 

296 



DEAR ANNIE 

her brown head. She radiated good will and loving- 
kindness as fervently as a lily in the border radiated 
perfume. 

It was very warm, and the northwest sky had a 
threatening mountain of clouds. Occasionally An- 
nie glanced at it and raked the faster, and thought 
complacently of the water-proof covers in the little 
barn. This hay was valuable for the Reverend Silas's 
horse. 

Two of the front windows of the house were filled 
with girls' heads, and the regular swaying movement 
of white-clad arms sewing. The girls sat in the 
house because it was so sunny on the piazza in the 
afternoon. There were four girls in the sitting- 
room, all making finery for themselves. On the 
other side of the front door one of the two windows 
was blank; in the other was visible a nodding gray 
head, that of Annie's father taking his afternoon nap. 

Everything was still except the girls' tongues, an 
occasional burst of laughter, and the crackling shrill 
of locusts. Nothing had passed on the dusty road 
since Benny and Annie had begun their work. Lynn 
Corners was nothing more than a hamlet. It was 
even seldom that an automobile got astray there, 
being diverted from the little city of Anderson, six 
miles away, by turning to the left instead of the right. 

Benny stopped again and wiped his forehead, all 
pink and beaded with sweat. He was a pretty 
young man — as pretty as a girl, although large. He 
glanced furtively at Annie, then he went with a soft, 
padding glide, like a big cat, to the piazza and settled 
down. He leaned his head against a post, closed his 

297 



THE COPY-CAT 

eyes, and inhaled the sweetness of flowers alive and 
dying, of new-mown hay. Annie glanced at him 
and an angelic look came over her face. At that 
moment the sweetness of her nature seemed actually 
visible. 

"He is tired, poor boy!" she thought. She also 
thought that probably Benny felt the heat more be- 
cause he was stout. Then she raked faster and 
faster. She fairly flew over the yard, raking the 
severed grass and flowers into heaps. The air grew 
more sultry. The sun was not yet clouded, but the 
northwest was darker and rumbled ominously. 

The girls in the sitting-room continued to chatter 
and sew. One of them might have come out to help 
this little sister toiling alone, but Annie did not think 
of that. She raked with the uncomplaining sweet- 
ness of an angel until the storm burst. The rain 
came down in solid drops, and the sky was a sheet 
of clamoring flame. Annie made one motion toward 
the barn, but there was no use. The hay was not 
half cocked. There was no sense in running for 
covers. Benny was up and lumbering into the house, 
and her sisters were shutting windows and crying 
out to her. Annie deserted her post and fled before 
the wind, her pink skirts lashing her heels, her hair 
dripping. 

When she entered the sitting-room her sisters, 
Imogen, Eliza, Jane, and Susan, were all there; also 
her father, Silas, tall and gaunt and gray. To the 
Hempsteads a thunder-storm partook of the nature 
of a religious ceremony. The family gathered to- 
gether, and it was understood that they were all 

398 



DEAR ANNIE 

offering prayer and recognizing God as present on 
the wings of the tempest. In reality they were all 
very nervous in thunder-storms, with the exception 
of Annie. She always sent up a little silent petition 
that her sisters and brother and father, and the horse 
and dog and cat, might escape danger, although she 
had never been quite sure that she was not wicked 
in including the dog and cat. She was surer about 
the horse because he was the means by which her 
father made pastoral calls upon his distant sheep. 
Then afterward she just sat with the others and 
waited until the storm was over and it was time to 
open windows and see if the roof had leaked. To- 
day, however, she was intent upon the hay. In a 
lull of the tempest she spoke. 

"It is a pity," she said, "that I was not able to 
get the hay cocked and the covers on." 

Then Imogen turned large, sarcastic blue eyes 
upon her. Imogen was considered a beauty, pink 
and white, golden-haired, and dimpled, with a curi- 
ous calculating hardness of character and a sharp 
tongue, so at variance with her appearance that 
people doubted the evidence of their senses. 

"If," said Imogen, "you had only made Benny 
work instead of encouraging him to dawdle and 
finally to stop altogether, and if you had gone out 
directly after dinner, the hay would have been all 
raked up and covered." 

Nothing could have exceeded the calm and in- 
structive superiority of Imogen's tone. A mass of 
soft white fabric lay upon her lap, although she had 
removed scissors and needle and thimble to a safe 

299 



THE COPY-CAT 

distance. She tilted her chin with a royal air. When 
the storm lulled she had stopped praying. 

Imogen's sisters echoed her and joined in the at- 
tack upon Annie. 

" Yes," said Jane, "if you had only started earlier, 
Annie. I told Eliza when you went out in the yard 
that it looked like a shower." 

Eliza nodded energetically. 

"It was foolish to start so late," said Susan, with 
a calm air of wisdom only a shade less exasperating 
than Imogen's. 

"And you always encourage Benny so in being 
lazy," said Eliza. 

Then the Reverend Silas joined in. "You should 
have more sense of responsibility toward your broth- 
er, your only brother, Annie," he said, in his deep 
pulpit voice. 

"It was after two o'clock when you went out," 
said Imogen. 

"And all you had to do was the dinner-dishes, and 
there were very few to-day," said Jane. 

Then Annie turned with a quick, cat-like motion. 
Her eyes blazed under her brown toss of hair. She 
gesticulated with her little, nervous hands. Her 
voice was as sweet and intense as a reed, and withal 
piercing with anger. 

"It was not half past one when I went out," said 
she, "and there was a whole sinkful of dishes." 

"It was after two. I looked at the clock," said 
Imogen. 

"It was not." 

"And there were very few dishes," said Jane, 
300 



DEAR ANNIE 

"A whole sinkful," said Annie, tense with wrath. 

"You always are rather late about starting," said 
Susan. 

"I am not! I was not! I washed the dishes, and 
swept the kitchen, and blacked the stove, and cleaned 
the silver." 

"I swept the kitchen," said Imogen, severely. 
"Annie, I am surprised at you." 

"And you know I cleaned the silver yesterday," 
said Jane. 

Annie gave a gasp and looked from one to the 
other. 

"You know you did not sweep the kitchen," said 
Imogen. 

Annie's father gazed at her severely. "My dear," 
he said, "how long must I try to correct you of this 
habit of making false statements?" 

"Dear Annie does not realize that they are false 
statements, father," said Jane. Jane was not pretty, 
but she gave the effect of a long, sweet stanza of 
some fine poetess. She was very tall and slender and 
large-eyed, and wore always a serious smile. She 
was attired in a purple muslin gown, cut V-shaped 
at the throat, and, as always, a black velvet ribbon 
with a little gold locket attached. The locket con- 
tained a coil of hair. Jane had been engaged to a 
young minister, now dead three years, and he had 
given her the locket. 

Jane no doubt had mourned for her lover, but she 
had a covert pleasure in the romance of her situation. 
She was a year younger than Annie, and she had 
loved and lost, and so had achieved a sentimental 

301 



THE COPY-CAT 

distinction. Imogen always had admirers. Eliza 
had been courted at intervals half-heartedly by a 
widower, and Susan had had a few fleeting chances. 
But Jane was the only one who had been really defi- 
nite in her heart aff"airs. As for Annie, nobody ever 
thought of her in such a connection. It was supposed 
that Annie had no thought of marriage, that she was 
foreordained to remain unwed and keep house for 
her father and Benny. 

When Jane said that dear Annie did not realize 
that she made false statements, she voiced an opinion 
of the family before which Annie was always abso- 
lutely helpless. Defense meant counter-accusation. 
Annie could not accuse her family. She glanced 
from one to the other. In her blue eyes were still 
sparks of wrath, but she said nothing. She felt, as 
always, speechless, when affairs reached such a junc- 
ture. She began, in spite of her good sense, to feel 
guiltily responsible for everything — for the spoiling 
of the hay, even for the thunder-storm. What was 
more, she even wished to feel guiltily responsible. 
Anything was better than to be sure her sisters were 
not speaking the truth, that her father was blaming 
her unjustly. 

Benny, who sat hunched upon himself with the 
effect of one set of bones and muscles leaning upon 
others for support, was the only one who spoke for 
her, and even he spoke to little purpose. 

"One of you other girls," said he, in a thick, sweet 
voice, "might have come out and helped Annie; 
then she could have got the hay in." 

They all turned on him. 
302 



DEAR ANNIE 

"It is all very well for you to talk," said Imogen. 
"I saw you myself quit raking hay and sit down on 
the piazza." 

"Yes," assented Jane, nodding violently, "I saw 
you, too." 

"You have no sense of your responsibility, Ben- 
jamin, and your sister Annie abets you in evading 
it," said Silas Hempstead with dignity. 

"Benny feels the heat," said Annie. 

"Father is entirely right," said Eliza. "Benja- 
min has no sense of responsibility, and it is mainly 
owing to Annie." 

"But dear Annie does not realize it," said 
Jane. 

Benny got up lumberingly and left the room. He 
loved his sister Annie, but he hated the mild simmer 
of feminine rancor to which even his father's pres- 
ence failed to add a masculine flavor. Benny was 
always leaving the room and allowing his sisters 
"to fight it out." 

Just after he left there was a tremendous peal 
of thunder and a blue flash, and they all prayed 
again, except Annie, who was occupied with her own 
perplexities of life, and not at all afraid. She won- 
dered, as she had wondered many times before, if 
she could possibly be in the wrong, if she were spoil- 
ing Benny, if she said and did things without know- 
ing that she did so, or the contrary. Then suddenly 
she tightened her mouth. She knew. This sweet- 
tempered, anxious-to-please Annie was entirely sane, 
she had unusual self-poise. She knew that she knew 
what she did and said, and what she did not do or 

303 



THE COPY-CAT 

say, and a strange comprehension of her family over- 
whelmed her. Her sisters were truthful; she would 
not admit anything else, even to herself; but they 
confused desires and impulses with accomplishment. 
They had done so all their lives, some of them from 
intense egotism, some possibly from slight twists in 
their mental organisms. As for her father, he had 
simply rather a weak character, and was swayed by 
the majority. Annie, as she sat there among the 
praying group, made the same excuse for her sisters 
that they made for her. "They don't realize it," 
she said to herself. 

When the storm finally ceased she hurried up- 
stairs and opened the windows, letting in the rain- 
fresh air. Then she got supper, while her sisters 
resumed their needlework. A curious conviction 
seized her, as she was hurrying about the kitchen, 
that in all probability some, if not all, of her sisters 
considered that they were getting the supper. Pos- 
sibly Jane had reflected that she ought to get supper, 
then she had taken another stitch in her work and 
had not known fairly that her impulse of duty had 
not been carried out. Imogen, presumably; was sew- 
ing with the serene consciousness that, since she was 
herself, it followed as a matter of course that she was 
performing all the tasks of the house. 

While Annie was making an omelet Benny came 
out into the kitchen and stood regarding her, hands 
in pockets, making, as usual, one set of muscles rest 
upon another. His face was full of the utmost good 
nature, but it also convicted him of too much sloth 
to obey its commands. 

304 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Say, Annie, what on earth makes them all pick 
on you so?" he observed. 

"Hush, Benny! They don't mean to. They don't 
know it." 

"But say, Annie, you must know that they tell 
whoppers. You did sweep the kitchen." 

"Hush, Benny! Imogen really thinks she swept 
it." 

"Imogen always thinks she has done everything 
she ought to do, whether she has done it or not," 
said Benny, with unusual astuteness. "Why don't 
you up and tell her she lies, Annie?" 

"She doesn't really lie," said Annie. 

"She does lie, even if she doesn't know it," said 
Benny; "and what is more, she ought to be made to 
know it. Say, Annie, it strikes me that you are 
doing the same by the girls that they accuse you of 
doing by me. Aren't you encouraging them in evil 
ways r 

Annie started, and turned and stared at him. 

Benny nodded. "I can't see any difference," he 
said. "There isn't a day but one of the girls thinks 
she has done something you have done, or hasn't 
done something you ought to have done, and they 
blame you all the time, when you don't deserve it, 
and you let them, and they don't know it, and I 
don't think myself that they know they tell whop- 
pers; but they ought to know. Strikes me you are 
just spoiling the whole lot, father thrown in, Annie. 
You are a dear, just as they say, but you are too 
much of a dear to be good for them." 

Annie stared. 

20 30s 



THE COPY-CAT 

"You are letting that omelet burn," said Benny. 
"Say, Annie, I will go out and turn that hay in 
the morning. I know I don't amount to much, but 
I ain't a girl, anyhow, and I haven't got a cross-eyed 
soul. That's what ails a lot of girls. They mean all 
right, but their souls have been cross-eyed ever 
since they came into the world, and it's just such 
girls as you who ought to get them straightened 
out. You know what has happened to-day. Well, 
here's what happened yesterday. I don't tell tales, 
but you ought to know this, for I believe Tom Reed 
has his eye on you, in spite of Imogen's being such 
a beauty, and Susan's having manners like silk, 
and Eliza's giving everybody the impression that 
she is too good for this earth, and Jane's trying to 
make everybody think she is a sweet martyr, with- 
out a thought for mortal man, when that is only 
her way of trying to catch one. You know Tom 
Reed was here last evening?" 

Annie nodded. Her face turned scarlet, then 
pathetically pale. She bent over her omelet, care- 
fully lifting it around the edges. 

"Well," Benny went on, "I know he came to see 
you, and Imogen went to the door and ushered him 
into the parlor, and I was out on the piazza, and 
she didn't know it, but I heard her tell him that she 
thought you had gone out. She hinted, too, that 
George Wells had taken you to the concert in the 
town hall. He did ask you, didn't he?" 

"Yes." 

"Well, Imogen spoke in this way." Benny 
lowered his voice and imitated Imogen to the life. 

306 



DEAR ANNIE 

"*Yes, we are all well, thank you. Father is busy, 
of course; Jane has run over to Mrs. Jacobs's for 
a pattern; Eliza is writing letters; and Susan is 
somewhere about the house. Annie — ^well, Annie — 
George Wells asked her to go to the concert — I 
rather — ' Then," said Benny, in his natural voice, 
"Imogen stopped, and she could say truthfully 
that she didn't lie, but anybody would have thought 
from what she said that you had gone to the concert 
with George Wells." 

"Did Tom inquire for me?" asked Annie, in a 
low voice. 

"Didn't have a chance. Imogen got ahead of 
im. 

"Oh, well, then it doesn't matter. I dare say he 
did come to see Imogen." 

"He didn't," said Benny, stoutly. "And that 
isn't all. Say, Annie — " 

"What?" 

"Are you going to marry George Wells? It is 
none of my business, but are you?" 

Annie laughed a little, although her face was still 
pale. She had folded the omelet and was carefully 
watching it. 

"You need not worry about that, Benny dear," 
she said. 

"Then what right have the girls to tell so many 
people the nice things they hear you say about him?" 

Annie removed the omelet skilfully from the pan 
to a hot plate, which she set on the range shelf, and 
turned to her brother. 

"What nice things do they hear me say?" 

307 



THE COPY-CAT 

"That he is so handsome; that he has such a 
good position; that he is the very best young man 
in the place; that you should think every girl 
would be head over heels in love with him; that 
every word he speaks is so bright and clever." 

Annie looked at her brother. 

"I don't believe you ever said one of those things," 
remarked Benny. 

Annie continued to look at him. 

"Did you?" 

"Benny dear, I am not going to tell you." 

"You won't say you never did, because that 
would be putting your sisters in the wrong and 
admitting that they tell lies. Annie, you are a dear, 
but I do think you are doing wrong and spoiling 
them as much as they say you are spoiling me." 

"Perhaps I am," said Annie. There was a strange, 
tragic expression on her keen, pretty little face. 
She looked as if her mind was contemplating strenu- 
ous action which was changing her very features. 
She had covered the finished omelet and was now 
cooking another. 

"I wish you would see if everybody is in the 
house and ready, Benny," said she. "When this 
omelet is done they must come right away, or nothing 
will be fit to eat. And, Benny dear, if you don't 
mind, please get the butter and the cream-pitcher 
out of the ice-chest. I have everything else on the 
table." 

"There is another thing," said Benny. "I don't 
go about telling tales, but I do think it is time you 
knew. The girls tell everybody that you like to do 

308 



DEAR ANNIE 

the housework so much that they don't dare inter- 
fere. And it isn't so. They may have taught them- 
selves to think it is so, but it isn't. You would Hke 
a little time for fancy-work and reading as well as 
they do." 

"Please get the cream and butter, and see if 
they are all in the house," said Annie. She spoke 
as usual, but the strange expression remained in her 
face. It was still there when the family were all 
gathered at the table and she was serving the puffy 
omelet. Jane noticed it first. 

"What makes you look so odd, Annie.?" said she. 

"I don't know how I look odd," replied Annie. 

They all gazed at her then, her father with some 
anxiety. "You don't look yourself," he said. "You 
are feeling well, aren't you, Annie .>"' 

"Quite well, thank you, father." 

But after the omelet was served and the tea 
poured Annie rose. 

"Where are you going, Annie?" asked Imogen, 
in her sarcastic voice. 

"To my room, or perhaps out in the orchard." 

"It will be sopping wet out there after the shower," 
said Eliza. "Are you crazy, Annie?" 

"I have on my black skirt, and I will wear rub- 
bers," said Annie, quietly. "I want some fresh air." 

"I should think you had enough fresh air. You 
were outdoors all the afternoon, while we were 
cooped up in the house," said Jane. 

"Don't you feel well, Annie?" her father asked 
again, a golden bit of omelet poised on his fork, as 
she was leaving the room. 

309 



THE COPY-CAT 

"Quite well, father dear." 

"But you are eating no supper." 

"I have always heard that people who cook don't 
need so much to eat," said Imogen. "They say 
the essence of the food soaks in through the pores." 

"I am quite well," Annie repeated, and the door 
closed behind her. 

"Dear Annie! She is always doing odd things 
like this," remarked Jane. 

"Yes, she is, things that one cannot account for, 
but Annie is a dear," said Susan. 

"I hope she is well," said Annie's father. 

"Oh, she is well enough. Don't worry, father," 
said Imogen. "Dear Annie is always doing the 
unexpected. She looks very well." 

"Yes, dear Annie is quite stout, for her," said Jane. 

"I think she is thinner than I have ever seen her, 
and the rest of you look like stuffed geese," said 
Benny, rudely. 

Imogen turned upon him in dignified wrath. 
"Benny, you insult your sisters," said she. "Father, 
you should really tell Benny that he should bridle 
his tongue a little." 

"You ought to bridle yours, every one of you," 
retorted Benny. "You girls nag poor Annie every 
single minute. You let her do all the work, then 
you pick at her for it." 

There was a chorus of treble voices. "We nag 
dear Annie! We pick at dear Annie! We make 
her do everything! Father, you should remonstrate 
with Benjamin. You know how we all love dear 
Annie!" 

310 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Benjamin," began Silas Hempstead, but Benny, 
with a smothered exclamation, was up and out of 
the room. 

Benny quite frankly disliked his sisters, with the 
exception of Annie. For his father he had a sort of 
respectful tolerance. He could not see why he should 
have anything else. His father had never done 
anything for him except to admonish him. His 
scanty revenue for his support and college expenses 
came from his maternal grandmother, who had been 
a woman of parts and who had openly scorned her 
son-in-law. 

Grandmother Loomis had left a will which occa- 
sioned much comment. By its terms she had pro- 
vided sparsely but adequately for Benjamin's edu- 
cation and living until he should graduate; and her 
house, with all her personal property, and the bulk of 
the sum from which she had derived her own income, 
fell to her granddaughter Annie. Annie had always 
been her grandmother's favorite. There had been 
covert dismay when the contents of the will were 
made known, then one and all had congratulated 
the beneficiary, and said abroad that they were glad 
dear Annie was so well provided for. It was inti- 
mated by Imogen and Eliza that probably dear 
Annie would not marr}', and in that case Grand- 
mother Loomis's bequest was so fortunate. She had 
probably taken that into consideration. Grand- 
mother Loomis had now been dead four years, and 
her deserted home had been for rent, furnished, but 
it had remained vacant. 

Annie soon came back from the orchard, and after 

3" 



THE COPY-CAT 

she had cleared away the supper-table and washed 
the dishes she went up to her room, carefully re- 
arranged her hair, and changed her dress. Then she 
sat down beside a window and waited and watched, 
her pointed chin in a cup of one httle thin hand, her 
soft muslin skirts circling around her, and the scent 
of queer old sachet emanating from a flowered ribbon 
of her grandmother's which she had tied around her 
waist. The ancient scent always clung to the rib- 
bon, suggesting faintly as a dream the musk and 
roses and violets of some old summer-time. 

Annie sat there and gazed out on the front yard, 
which was silvered over with moonlight. Annie's 
four sisters all sat out there. They had spread a 
rug over the damp grass and brought out chairs. 
There were five chairs, although there were only 
four girls. Annie gazed over the yard and down the 
street. She heard the chatter of the girls, which 
was inconsequent and absent, as if their minds were 
on other things than their conversation. Then sud- 
denly she saw a small red gleam far down the street, 
evidently that of a cigar, and also a dark, moving 
figure. Then there ensued a subdued wrangle in 
the yard. Imogen insisted that her sisters should 
go into the house. They all resisted, Eliza the most 
vehemently. Imogen was arrogant and compelling. 
Finally she drove them all into the house except 
Eliza, who wavered upon the threshold of yielding. 
Imogen was obliged to speak very softly lest the ap- 
proaching man hear, but Annie, in the window above 
her, heard every word. 

"You know he is coming to see me," said Imogen, 
312 



DEAR ANNIE 

passionately. "You know — you know, Eliza, and 
yet every single time he comes, here are you girls, 
spying and listening." 

"He comes to see Annie, I believe," said Eliza, 
in her stubborn voice, which yet had indecision in it. 

"He never asks for her." 

"He never has a chance. We all tell him, the 
minute he comes in, that she is out. But now I am 
going to stay, znyway." 

"Stay if you want to. You are all a jealous lot. 
If you girls can't have a beau yourselves, you be- 
grudge one to me. I never saw such a house as this 
for a man to come courting in." 

"I will stay," said Eliza, and this time her voice 
was wholly firm. "There is no use in my going, 
anyway, for the others are coming back." 

It was true. Back flitted Jane and Susan, and by 
that time Tom Reed had reached the gate, and his cigar 
was going out in a shower of sparks on the gravel 
walk, and all four sisters were greeting him and 
urging upon his acceptance the fifth chair. Annie, 
watching, saw that the young man seemed to hesi- 
tate. Then her heart leaped and she heard him 
speak quite plainly, with a note of defiance and irri- 
tation, albeit with embarrassment. 

"Is Miss Annie in.?" asked Tom Reed. 

Imogen answered first, and her harsh voice was 
honey-sweet. 

"I fear dear Annie is out," she said. "She will 
be so sorry to miss you." 

Annie, at her window, made a sudden passionate 
motion, then she sat still and listened. She argued 

313 



THE COPY-CAT 

fiercely that she was right in so doing. She felt that 
the time had come when she must know, for the sake 
of her own individuahty, just what she had to deal 
with in the natures of her own kith and kin. Dear 
Annie had turned in her groove of sweetness and 
gentle yielding, as all must turn who have any 
strength of character underneath the sweetness and 
gentleness. Therefore Annie, at her window above, 
listened. 

At first she heard little that bore upon herself, 
for the conversation was desultory, about the weather 
and general village topics. Then Annie heard her 
own name. She was "dear Annie," as usual. She 
listened, fairly faint with amazement. What she 
heard from that quartette of treble voices down there 
in the moonlight seemed almost like a fairy-tale. 
The sisters did not violently incriminate her. They 
were too astute for that. They told half-truths. 
They told truths which were as shadows of the real 
facts, and yet not to be contradicted. They built 
up between them a story marvelously consist- 
ent, unless prearranged, and that Annie did not 
think possible. George Wells figured in the tale, 
and there were various hints and pauses concerning 
herself and her own character in daily life, and not 
one item could be flatly denied, even if the girl could 
have gone down there and, standing in the midst 
of that moonlit group, given her sisters the lie. 

Everything which they told, the whole structure 
of falsehood, had beams and rafters of truth. Annie 
felt helpless before it all. To her fancy, her sisters 
and Tom Reed seemed actually sitting in a fairy 

314 



DEAR ANNIE 

building whose substance was utter falsehood, and 
yet which could not be utterly denied. An awful 
sense of isolation possessed her. So these were her 
own sisters, the sisters whom she had loved as a 
matter of the simplest nature, whom she had ad- 
mired, whom she had served. 

She made no allowance, since she herself was per- 
fectly normal, for the motive which underlay it all. 
She could not comprehend the strife of the women 
over the one man. Tom Reed was in reality the one 
desirable match in the village. Annie knew, or 
thought she knew, that Tom Reed had it in mind 
to love her, and she innocently had it in mind to 
love him. She thought of a home of her own and 
his with dehght. She thought of it as she thought 
of the roses coming into bloom in June, and she 
thought of it as she thought of the every-day hap- 
penings of life — cooking, setting rooms in order, 
washing dishes. However, there was something 
else to reckon with, and that Annie instinctively 
knew. She had been long-suiFering, and her long- 
sufFering was now regarded as endless. She had 
cast her pearls, and they had been trampled. She 
had turned her other cheek, and it had been promptly 
slapped. It was entirely true that Annie's sisters 
were not quite worthy of her, that they had taken 
advantage of her kindness and gentleness, and had 
mistaken them for weakness, to be despised. She 
did not understand them, nor they her. They 
were, on the whole, better than she thought, but 
with her there was a stern limit of endurance. Some- 
thing whiter and hotter than mere wrath was in the 

31S 



THE COPY-CAT 

girl's soul as she sat there and listened to the build- 
ing of that structure of essential falsehood about 
herself. 

She waited until Tom Reed had gone. He did 
not stay long. Then she went down-stairs with 
flying feet, and stood among them in the moonlight. 
Her father had come out of the study, and Benny 
had just been entering the gate as Tom Reed left. 
Then dear Annie spoke. She really spoke for the 
first time in her life, and there was something dread- 
ful about it all. A sweet nature is always rather 
dreadful when it turns and strikes, and Annie struck 
with the whole force of a nature with a foundation 
of steel. She left nothing unsaid. She defended 
herself and she accused her sisters as if before a 
judge. Then came her ultimatum. 

"To-morrow morning I am going over to Grand- 
mother Loomis's house, and I am going to live there 
a whole year," she declared, in a slow, steady voice. 
"As you know, I have enough to live on, and — in 
order that no word of mine can be garbled and twisted 
as it has been to-night, I speak not at all. Every- 
thing which I have to communicate shall be written 
in black and white, and signed with my own name, 
and black and white cannot lie." 

It was Jane who spoke first. "What will people 
say?" she whimpered, feebly. 

"From what I have heard you all say to-night, 
whatever you make them," retorted Annie — the 
Annie who had turned. 

Jane gasped. Silas Hempstead stood staring, 
quite dumb before the sudden problem. Imogen 

316 



DEAR ANNIE 

alone seemed to have any command whatever of 
the situation. 

"May I inquire what the butcher and grocer are 
going to think, no matter what your own sisters 
think and say, when you give your orders in writ- 
ing?" she inquired, achieving a jolt from tragedy 
to the commonplace. 

"That is my concern," replied Annie, yet she 
recognized the diflGiculty of that phase of the situa- 
tion. It is just such trifling matters which detract 
from the dignity of extreme attitudes toward ex- 
istence. Annie had taken an extreme attitude, 
yet here were the butcher and the grocer to reckon 
with. How could she communicate with them in 
writing without appearing absurd to the verge of 
insanity? Yet even that difiiculty had a solution. 

Annie thought it out after she had gone to bed 
that night. She had been imperturbable with her 
sisters, who had finally come in a body to make 
entreaties, although not apologies or retractions. 
There was a stiff-necked strain in the Hempstead 
family, and apologies and retractions were bitterer 
cuds for them to chew than for most. She had been 
imperturbable with her father, who had quoted 
Scripture and prayed at her during family worship. 
She had been imperturbable even with Benny, who 
had whispered to her: "Say, Annie, I don't blame 
you, but it will be a hell of a time without you. 
Can't you stick it out?" 

But she had had a struggle before her own vision 
of the butcher and the grocer, and their amazement 
when she ceased to speak to them. Then she settled 

317 



THE COPY-CAT 

that with a sudden leap of inspiration. It sounded 
too apropos to be life, but there was a little deaf-and- 
dumb girl, a far-away relative of the Hempsteads, 
who lived with her aunt Felicia in Anderson. She 
was a great trial to her aunt Felicia, who was a 
widow and well-to-do, and liked the elegancies and 
normalities of hfe. This unfortunate little Effie 
Hempstead could not be placed in a charitable insti- 
tution on account of the name she bore. Aunt 
Felicia considered it her worldly duty to care for 
her, but it was a trial. 

Annie would take Effie off Aunt Felicia's hands, 
and no comment would be excited by a deaf-and- 
dumb girl carrying written messages to the trades- 
men, since she obviously could not give them orally. 
The. only comment would be on Annie's conduct 
in holding herself aloof from her family and the 
village people generally. 

The next morning, when Annie went away, there 
was an excited conclave among the sisters. 

"She means to do it," said Susan, and she wept. 

Imogen's handsome face looked hard and set. 
"Let her, if she wants to," said she. 

"Only think what people will say!" wailed Jane. 

Imogen tossed her head. "I shall have some- 
thing to say myself," she returned. "I shall say how 
much we all regret that dear Annie has such a 
difficult disposition that she felt she could not live 
with her own family and must be alone." 

"But," said Jane, blunt in her distress, "will they 
believe it?" 

"Why will they not believe it, pray?" 
318 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Why, I am afraid people have the impression 
that dear Annie has — " Jane hesitated. 

"What?" asked Imogen, coldly. She looked very 
handsome that morning. Not a waved golden hair 
was out of place on her carefully brushed head. 
She wore the neatest of blue linen skirts and blouses, 
with a linen collar and white tie. There was some- 
thing hard but compelling about her blond beauty. 

"I am afraid," said Jane, "that people have a 
sort of general impression that dear Annie has per- 
haps as sweet a disposition as any of us, perhaps 
sweeter." 

"Nobody says that dear Annie has not a sweet 
disposition," said Imogen, taking a careful stitch in 
her embroidery. "But a sweet disposition is very 
often extremely difficult for other people. It con- 
stantly puts them in the wrong. I am well aware of 
the fact that dear Annie does a great deal for all 
of us, but it is sometimes irritating. Of course 
it is quite certain that she must have a feeling 
of superiority because of it, and she should not 
have it." 

Sometimes Eliza made illuminating speeches. "I 
suppose it follows, then," said she, with shght irony, 
"that only an angel can have a very sweet disposi- 
tion without offending others." 

But Imogen was not in the least nonplussed. 
She finished her Hne of thought. "And with all her 
sweet disposition," said she, "nobody can deny 
that dear Annie is peculiar, and peculiarity always 
makes people difficult for other people. Of course 
it is horribly pecuHar what she is proposing to do 

319 



THE COPY-CAT 

now. That in itself will be enough to convince 
people that dear Annie must be difficult. Only a 
difficult person could do such a strange thing." 

"Who is going to get up and get breakfast in the 
morning, and wash the dishes.?" inquired Jane, 
irrelevantly. 

"All I ever want for breakfast is a bit of fruit, a 
roll, and an egg, besides my coffee," said Imogen, 
with her imperious air. 

"Somebody has to prepare it." 

"That is a mere nothing," said Imogen, and she 
took another stitch. 

After a little, Jane and Eliza went by themselves 
and discussed the problem. 

"It is quite evident that Imogen means to do 
nothing," said Jane. 

"And also that she will justify herself by the 
theory that there is nothing to be done," said Eliza. 

"Oh, well," said Jane, "I will get up and get 
breakfast, of course. I once contemplated the pros- 
pect of doing it the rest of my life." 

Eliza assented. "I can understand that it will 
not be so hard for you," she said, "and although I 
myself always aspired to higher things than preparing 
breakfasts, still, you did not, and it is true that you 
would probably have had it to do if poor Henry 
had Hved, for he was not one to ever have a very 
large salary." 

"There are better things than large salaries," 
said Jane, and her face looked sadly reminiscent. 
After all, the distinction of being the only one who 
had been on the brink of preparing matrimonial 

320 



DEAR ANNIE 

breakfasts was much. She felt that it would make 
earl}' rising and early work endurable to her, although 
she was not an active young woman. 

"I will get a dish-mop and wash the dishes," said 
EUza. "I can manage to have an instructive book 
propped open on the kitchen table, and keep my 
mind upon higher things as I do such menial tasks." 

Then Susan stood in the doorway, a tall figure 
gracefully swaying sidewise, long-throated and promi- 
nent-eyed. She was the least attractive-looking of 
any of the sisters, but her manners were so charming, 
and she was so perfectly the lady, that it made up 
for any lack of beauty. 

"I will dust," said Susan, in a lovely voice, and 
as she spoke she involuntarily bent and sAivirled her 
limp muslins in such a way that she fairly suggested 
a moral duster. There was the making of an actress 
in Susan. Nobody had ever been able to decide what 
her true individual self was. Quite unconsciously, 
like a chameleon, she took upon herself the charac- 
teristics of even inanimate things. Just now she 
was a duster, and a wonderfully creditable duster. 

"Who," said Jane, "is going to sweep? Dear 
Annie has always done that." 

"I am not strong enough to sweep. I am very 
sorry," said Susan, who remained a duster, and did 
not become a broom. 

"If we have system," said Eliza, vaguely, "the 
work ought not to be so very hard." 

"Of course not," said Imogen. She had come in 
and seated herself. Her three sisters eyed her, but 
she embroidered imperturbably. The same thought 



21 J 



21 



THE COPY-CAT 

was in the minds of all. Obviously Imogen was the 
very one to take the task of sweeping upon herself. 
That hard, compact, young body of hers suggested 
strenuous household work. Embroidery did not 
seem to be her role at all. 

But Imogen had no intention of sweeping. Indeed, 
the very imagining of such tasks in connection with 
herself was beyond her. She did not even dream 
that her sisters expected it of her. 

"I suppose," said Jane, "that we might be able 
to engage Mrs. Moss to come in once a week and 
do the sweeping." 

"It would cost considerable," said Susan. 

"But it has to be done." 

"I should think it might be managed, with sys- 
tem, if you did not hire anybody," said Imogen, 
calmly. 

" You talk of system as if it were a suction cleaner," 
said Eliza, with a dash of asperity. Sometimes she 
reflected how she would have hated Imogen had 
she not been her sister. 

"System is invaluable," said Imogen. She looked 
away from her embroidery to the white stretch of 
country road, arched over with elms, and her beau- 
tiful eyes had an expression as if they sighted sys- 
tem, the justified settler of all problems. 

Meantime, Annie Hempstead was traveling to 
Anderson in the jolting trolley-car, and trying to 
settle her emotions and her outlook upon life, which 
jolted worse than the car upon a strange new track. 
She had not the slightest intention of giving up her 
plan, but she realized within herself the sensations 

322 



DEAR ANNIE 

of a revolutionist. Who in her family, for generations 
and generations, had ever taken the course which 
she was taking? She was not exactly frightened 
— ^Annie had splendid courage when once her blood 
was up — but she was conscious of a tumult and grind 
of adjustment to a new level which made her nervous. 

She reached the end of the car line, then walked 
about half a mile to her Aunt Felicia Hempstead's 
house. It was a handsome house, after the standard 
of nearly half a century ago. It had an opulent air, 
with its sweUing breasts of bay windows, through 
which showed fine lace curtains; its dormer-windows, 
each with its carefully draped curtains; its black- 
walnut front door, whose side-lights were screened 
with medallioned lace. The house sat high on three 
terraces of velvet-like grass, and was surmounted bj^ 
stone steps in three instalments, each of which was 
flanked by stone lions. 

Annie mounted the three riers of steps between the 
stone lions and rang the front-door bell, which was 
polished so brightly that it winked at her like a 
brazen eye. Almost directly the door was opened 
by an immaculate, white-capped and white-aproned 
maid, and Annie was ushered into the parlor. When 
Annie had been a Httle thing she had been enamoured 
of and impressed by the splendor of this parlor. Now 
she had doubts of it, in spite of the long, magnificent 
sweep of lace curtains, the sheen of carefully kept 
upholstery, the gleam of alabaster statuettes, and 
the even piles of gilt-edged books upon the polished 
tables. 

Soon Mrs. Felicia Hempstead entered, a tall, well- 
323 



THE COPY-CAT 

set-up woman, with a handsome face and keen eyes. 
She wore her usual morning costume — a breakfast 
sacque of black silk profusely trimmed with lace, 
and a black silk skirt. She kissed Annie, with a 
slight peck of closely set lips, for she liked her. Then 
she sat down opposite her and regarded her with 
as much of a smile as her sternly set mouth could 
manage, and inquired poHtely regarding her health 
and that of the family. When Annie broached the 
subject of her call, the set calm of her face relaxed, 
and she nodded. 

"I know what your sisters are. You need not 
explain to me," she said. 

"But," returned Annie, "I do not think they 
realize. It is only because I — " 

"Of course," said Felicia Hempstead. "It is be- 
cause they need a dose of bitter medicine, and you 
hope they will be the better for it. I understand you, 
my dear. You have spirit enough, but you don't 
get it up often. That is where they make their mis- 
take. Often the meek are meek from choice, and 
they are the ones to beware of. I don't blame you 
for trying it. And you can have EfEe and welcome. 
I warn you that she is a little wearing. Of course 
she can't help her affliction, poor child, but it is 
dreadful. I have had her taught. She can read 
and write very well now, poor child, and she is not 
lacking, and I have kept her well dressed. I take 
her out to drive with me every day, and am not 
ashamed to have her seen with me. If she had all 
her faculties she would not be a bad-looking little 
girl. Now, of course, she has something of a vacant 

324 



DEAR ANNIE 

expression. That comes, I suppose, from her not 
being able to hear. She has learned to speak a few 
words, but I don't encourage her doing that before 
people. It is too evident that there is something 
wrong. She never gets off one tone. But I will let 
her speak to you. She will be glad to go with you. 
She likes you, and I dare say you can put up with 
her. A woman when she is alone will make a com- 
panion of a brazen image. You can manage all right 
for everything except her clothes and lessons. I 
will pay for them." 

"Can't I give her lessons.''" 

"Well, you can tr^', but I am afraid 3'ou will need 
to have Mr. Freer come over once a week. It seems 
to me to be quite a knack to teach the deaf and 
dumb. You can see. I will have Effie come in and 
tell her about the plan. I wanted to go to Europe 
this summer, and did not know how to manage 
about Effie. It will be a godsend to me, this ar- 
rangement, and of course after the year is up she 
can come back." 

With that Felicia touched a bell, the maid ap- 
peared with automatic readiness, and presently a 
tall little girl entered. She was very well dressed. 
Her linen frock was hand-embroidered, and her shoes 
were ultra. Her pretty shock of fair hair was tied 
with French ribbon in a fetching bow, and she made 
a courtesy which would have befitted a little prin- 
cess. Poor Effie's courtesy was the one feature in 
which Felicia Hempstead took pride. After making 
it the child always glanced at her for approval, and 
her face hghted up with pleasure at the faint smile 



THE COPY-CAT 

which her little performance evoked. Effie would 
have been a pretty little girl had it not been for that 
vacant, bewildered expression of which Felicia had 
spoken. It was the expression of one shut up with 
the darkest silence of Hfe, that of her own self, and 
beauty was incompatible with it. 

Fehcia placed her stiiF forefinger upon her own 
lips and nodded, and the child's face became trans- 
figured. She spoke in a level, awful voice, utterly 
devoid of inflection, and full of fright. Her voice 
was as the first attempt of a skater upon ice. How- 
ever, it was intelligible. 

"Good morning," said she. "I hope you are well." 
Then she courtesied again. That little speech and 
one other, "Thank you, I am very well," were all 
she had mastered. Effie's instruction had begun 
rather late, and her teacher was not remarkably 
skilful. 

When Annie's lips moved in response, Effie's face 
fairly glowed with delight and affection. The little 
girl loved Annie. Then her questioning eyes sought 
Felicia, who beckoned, and drew from the pocket 
of her rustHng silk skirt a tiny pad and pencil. Effie 
crossed the room and stood at attention while Felicia 
wrote. When she had read the words on the pad she 
gave one look at Annie, then another at Fehcia, who 
nodded. 

Effie courtesied before Annie Hke a fairy dancer. 
"Good morning. I hope you are well," she said. 
Then she courtesied again and said, "Thank you, 
I am very well." Her pretty little face was quite 
eager with love and pleasure, and yet there was an 

326 



DEAR ANNIE 

effect as of a veil before the happy emotion in it. 
The contrast between the awful, level voice and the 
grace of motion and e\-ident delight at once shocked 
and compelled pity. Annie put her arms around 
Effie and kissed her. 

"You dear little thing," she said, quite forgetting 
that Effie could not hear. 

Felicia Hempstead got speedily to work, and soon 
Effies effects were packed and ready for transporta- 
tion upon the first express to L^nn Comers, and 
Annie and the little girl had boarded the trolley 
thither. 

Annie Hempstead had the sensation of one who 
takes a cold plunge — ^half pain and fright, half exhil- 
aration and triumph — ^when she had fairly- taken pos- 
session of her grandmother's house. There was gen- 
uine girlish pleasure in looking over the stock of 
old china and linen and ancient mahoganies, in 
starting a fire in the kitchen stove, and preparing 
a meal, the written order for which Effie had taken 
to the grocer and butcher. There was genuine de- 
light in sitting down with Effie at her very own table, 
spread with her grandmother's old damask and 
pretty dishes, and eating, without hearing a word of 
unfavorable comment upon the cookery. But there 
was a certain pain and terror in trampling upon that 
which it was difficult to define, either her conscience 
or sense of the di\4ne right of the conventional. 

But that night after Effie had gone to bed, and 
the house was set to rights, and she in her cool muslin 
was sitting on the front-door step, under the hooded 
trellis covered with wistaria, she was conscious of 

327 



THE COPY-CAT 

entire emancipation. She fairly gloated over her 
new estate. 

"To-night one of the others will really have to 
get the supper, and wash the dishes, and not be able 
to say she did it and I didn't, when I did," Annie 
thought with unholy joy. She knew perfectly well 
that her viewpoint was not sanctified, but she felt 
that she must allow her soul to have its little witch- 
caper or she could not answer for the consequences. 
There might result spiritual atrophy, which would 
be much more disastrous than sin and repentance. 
It was either the continuance of her old life in her 
father's house, which was the ignominious and harm- 
ful one of the scapegoat, or this. She at last reveled 
in this. H'ere she was mistress. Here what she did, 
she did, and what she did not do remained undone. 
Here her silence was her invincible weapon. Here 
she was free. 

The soft summer night enveloped her. The air 
was sweet with flowers and the grass which lay still 
unraked in her father's yard. A momentary feeling 
of impatience seized her; then she dismissed it, and 
peace came. What had she to do with that hay.? 
Her father would be obliged to buy hay if it were not 
raked over and dried, but what of that? She had 
nothing to do with it. 

She heard voices and soft laughter. A dark 
shadow passed along the street. Her heart quick- 
ened its beat. The shadow turned in at her father's 
gate. There was a babel of welcoming voices, of 
which Annie could not distinguish one articulate 
word. She sat leaning forward, her eyes intent upon 

328 



DEAR ANNIE 

the road. Then she heard the click of her father's gate 
and the dark, shadowy figure reappeared in the road. 
Annie knew who it was; she knew that Tom Reed 
was coming to see her. For a second, rapture seized 
her, then dismay. How well she knew her sisters — 
how very well! Not one of them would have given 
him the slightest inkhng of the true situation. They 
would have told him, by the sweetest of insinuations, 
rather than b\- straight statements, that she had left 
her father's roof and come over here, but not one 
word would have been told him concerning her vow 
of silence. They would leave that for him to dis- 
cover, to his amazement and anger. 

Annie rose and fled. She closed the door, turned 
the key softly, and ran up-stairs in the dark. Kneel- 
ing before a window on the farther side from her old 
home, she watched with eager eyes the 30ung man 
open the gate and come up the path between the 
old-fashioned shrubs. The clove-like fragrance of 
the pinks in the border came in her face. Annie 
watched Tom Reed disappear beneath the trellised 
hood of the door; then the bell tinkled through the 
house. It seemed to Annie that she heard it as she 
had never heard anything before. Every nerve in her 
body seemed urging her to rise and go down-stairs 
and admit this young man whom she loved. But 
her will, turned upon itself, kept her back. She 
could not rise and go doAivn; something stronger 
than her own wish restrained her. She suflPered 
horribly, but she remained. The bell tinkled again. 
There was a pause, then it sounded for the third 
time. 

329 



THE COPY-CAT 

Annie leaned against the window, faint and trem- 
bling. It was rather horrible to continue such a fight 
between will and inclination, but she held out. She 
would not have been herself had she not done so. 
Then she saw Tom Reed's figure emerge from under 
the shadow of the door, pass down the path between 
the sweet-flowering shrubs, seeming to stir up the 
odor of the pinks as he did so. He started to go 
down the road; then Annie heard a loud, silvery call, 
with a harsh inflection,, from her father's house. 
"Imogen is calling him back," she thought. 

Annie was out of the room, and, slipping softly 
down-stairs and out into the yard, crouched close 
to the fence overgrown with sweetbrier, its founda- 
tion hidden in the mallow, and there she listened. 
She wanted to know what Imogen and her other 
sisters were about to say to Tom Reed, and she 
meant to know. She heard every word. The dis- 
tance was not great, and her sisters' voices carried 
far, in spite of their honeyed tones and eflForts tow- 
ard secrecy. By the time Tom had reached the 
gate of the parsonage they had all crowded down 
there, a fluttering assembly in their snowy summer 
muslins, like white doves. Annie heard Imogen first. 
Imogen was always the ringleader. 

"Couldn't you find her?" asked Imogen. 

"No. Rang three times," replied Tom. He had 
a boyish voice, and his chagrin showed plainly in it. 
Annie knew just how he looked, how dear and big 
and foolish, with his handsome, bewildered face, 
blurting out to her sisters his disappointment, with 
innocent faith in their sympathy. 

330 



DEAR ANNIE 

Then Annie heard Eliza speak in a small, sweet 
voice, which yet, to one who understood her, carried in 
it a sting of malice. "How very strange!" said Eliza. 

Jane spoke next. She echoed Eliza, but her voice 
was more emphatic and seemed multiple, as echoes 
do. "Yes, very strange indeed," said Jane. 

"Dear Annie is really very singular lately. It 
has distressed us all, especially father," said Susan, 
but deprecatingly. 

Then Imogen spoke, and to the point. "Annie 
must be in that house," said she. "She went in 
there, and she could not have gone out without our 
seeing her." 

Annie could fairly see the toss of Imogen's head 
as she spoke. 

"What in thunder do you all mean.?" asked Tom 
Reed, and there was a bluntness, almost a brutality, 
in his voice which was refreshing. 

"I do not think such forcible language is becoming, 
especially at the parsonage," said Jane. 

Annie distinctly heard Tom Reed snort. "Hang 
it if I care whether it is becoming or not," said he. 

"You seem to forget that you are addressing 
ladies, sir," said Jane. 

"Don't forget it for a blessed minute," returned 
Tom Reed. "Wish I could. You make it too evi- 
dent that you are — ladies, with ever}- word you 
speak, and all your beating about the bush. A man 
would blurt it out, and then I would know where 
I am at. Hang it if I know now. You all sa}^ that 
your sister is singular and that she distresses your 
father, and you" — addressing Imogen — "say that 

331 



THE COPY-CAT 

she must be in that house. You are the only one 
who does make a dab at speaking out; I will say 
that much for you. Now, if she is in that house, 
what in thunder is the matter.?" 

"I really cannot stay here and listen to such pro- 
fane language," said Jane, and she flitted up the path 
to the house like an enraged white moth. She had 
a fleecy white shawl over her head, and her pale 
outline was triangular. 

"If she calls that profane, I pity her," said Tom 
Reed. He had known the girls since they were 
children, and had never liked Jane. He continued, 
still addressing Imogen. "For Heaven's sake, if she 
is in that house, what is the matter?" said he. 
"Doesn't the bell ring? Yes, it does ring, though 
it is as cracked as the devil. I heard it. Has Annie 
gone deaf? Is she sick? Is she asleep? It is only 
eight o'clock. I don't believe she is asleep. Doesn't 
she want to see me? Is that the trouble? What 
have I done? Is she angry with me?" 

Eliza spoke, smoothly and sweetly. "Dear Annie 
is singular," said she. 

"What the dickens do you mean by singular? 
I have known Annie ever since she was that high. 
It never struck me that she was any more singular 
than other girls, except she stood an awful lot of 
nagging without making a kick. Here you all say 
she is singular, as if you meant she was" — ^Tom 
hesitated a second — "crazy," said he. "Now, I 
know that Annie is saner than any girl around here, 
and that simply does not go down. What do you 
all mean by singular?" 

332 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Dear Annie may not be singular, but her actions 
are sometimes singular," said Susan. "We all feel 
badly about this." 

"You mean her going over to her grandmother's 
house to live.'' I don't know whether I think that 
is anything but horse-sense. I have eyes in my 
head, and I have used them. Annie has worked 
like a dog here; I suppose she needed a rest." 

"We all do our share of the work," said Eliza, 
calmly, "but we do it in a different way from dear 
Annie. She makes very hard work of work. She 
has not as much system as we could wish. She tires 
herself unnecessarily." 

"Yes, that is quite true," assented Imogen. 
" Dear Annie gets very tired over the slightest tasks, 
whereas if she went a little more slowly and used 
more system the work would be accomplished well 
and with no fatigue. There are five of us to do the 
work here, and the house is very convenient." 

There was a silence. Tom Reed was bewildered. 
"But — doesn't she want to see me?" he asked, 
finally. 

"Dear Annie takes very singular notions some- 
times," said Eliza, softly. 

" If she took a notion not to go to the door when 
she heard the bell ring, she simply wouldn't," said 
Imogen, whose bluntness of speech was, after all, 
a relief. 

"Then you mean that you think she took a notion 
not to go to the door?" asked Tom, in a desperate 
tone. 

"Dear Annie is very singular," said Eliza, with 
333 



THE COPY-CAT 

such softness and deliberation that it was like a 
minor chord of music. 

"Do you know of anything she has against me?" 
asked Tom of Imogen; but Eliza answered for her. 

"Dear Annie is not in the habit of making confi- 
dantes of her sisters," said she, "but we do know 
that she sometimes takes unwarranted disHkes." 

"Which time generally cures," said Susan. 

"Oh yes," assented Eliza, "which time generally 
cures. She can have no reason whatever for avoid- 
ing you. You have always treated her well." 

"I have always meant to," said Tom, so miserably 
and helplessly that Annie, listening, felt her heart 
go out to this young man, badgered by females, 
and she formed a sudden resolution. 

"You have not seen very much of her, anyway," 
said Imogen. 

"I have always asked for her, but I understood 
she was busy," said Tom, "and that was the reason 
why I saw her so seldom." 

"Oh," said Eliza, "busy!" She said it with an 
indescribable tone. 

"If," supplemented Imogen, "there was system, 
there would be no need of any one of us being too 
busy to see our friends." 

"Then she has not been busy? She has not wanted 
to see me?" said Tom. "I think I understand at 
last. I have been a fool not to before. You girls 
have broken it to me as well as you could. Much 
obliged, I am sure. Good night." 

"Won't you come in?" asked Imogen. 

"We might have some music," said Eliza. 
334 



DEAR ANNIE 

"And there is an orange cake, and I will make 
coffee," said Susan. 

Annie reflected rapidly how she herself had made 
that orange cake, and what queer coffee Susan 
would be apt to concoct. 

"No, thank you," said Tom Reed, briskly. "I 
will drop in another evening. Think I must go 
home now. I have some important letters. Good 
night, all." 

Annie made a soft rush to the gate, crouching 
low that her sisters might not see her. They flocked 
into the house with irascible murmurings, like scold- 
ing birds, while Annie stole across the grass, which 
had begun to glisten with silver wheels of dew. She 
held her skirts closely wrapped around her, and 
stepped through a gap in the shrubs beside the walk, 
then sped swiftly to the gate. She reached it just 
as Tom Reed was passing with a quick stride. 

"Tom," said Annie, and the young man stopped 
short. 

He looked in her direction, but she stood close 
to a great snowball-bush, and her dress was green 
muslin, and he did not see her. Thinking that he 
had been mistaken, he started on, when she called 
again, and this time she stepped apart from the bush 
and her voice sounded clear as a flute. 

"Tom," she said. "Stop a minute, please." 

Tom stopped and came close to her. In the dim 
light she could see that his face was all aglow, like 
a child's, with delight and surprise. 

"Is that you, Annie?" he said. 

"Yes, I want to speak to you, please." 
335 



THE COPY-CAT 

"I have been here before, and I rang the bell three 
times. Then you were out, although your sisters 
thought not." 

"No, I was in the house." 

"You did not hear the bell?" 

"Yes, I heard it every time." 

"Then why—.?" 

"Come into the house with me and I will tell you; 
at least I will tell you all I can." 

Annie led the way and the young man followed. 
He stood in the dark entry while Annie lit the parlor 
lamp. The room was on the farther side of the 
house from the parsonage. 

"Come in and sit down," said Annie. Then the 
young man stepped into a room which was pretty in 
spite of itself. There was an old Brussels carpet 
with an enormous rose pattern. The haircloth fur- 
niture gave out gleams like black diamonds under 
the light of the lamp. In a corner stood a what-not 
piled with branches of white coral and shells. Annie's 
grandfather had been a sea-captain, and many of 
his spoils were in the house. Possibly Annie's own 
occupation of it was due to an adventurous strain 
inherited from him. Perhaps the same impulse 
which led him to voyage to foreign shores had led 
her to voyage across a green yard to the next house. 

Tom Reed sat down on the sofa. Annie sat in a 
rocking-chair near by. At her side was a Chinese 
teapoy, a nest of lacquer tables, and on it stood a 
small, squat idol. Annie's grandmother had been 
taken to task by her son-in-law, the Reverend Silas, 
for harboring a heathen idol, but she had only laughed. 

336 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Guess as long as I don't keep heathen to bow 
down before him, he can't do much harm," she had 
said. 

Now the grotesque face of the thing seemed to 
stare at the two Occidental lovers with the strange, 
calm sarcasm of the Orient, but they had no eyes 
or thought for it. 

"Why didn't you come to the door if you heard 
the bell ring?" asked Tom Reed, gazing at Annie, 
slender as a blade of grass in her clinging green 
gown. 

"Because I was not able to break my will then. 
I had to break it to go out in the yard and ask you 
to come in, but when the bell rang I hadn't got to 
the point where I could break it." 

"What on earth do you mean, Annie?" 

Annie laughed. "I don't wonder you ask," she 
said, "and the worst of it is I can't half answer you. 
I wonder how much, or rather how little explanation 
will content you?" 

Tom Reed gazed at her with the eyes of a man 
who might love a woman and have infinite patience 
with her, relegating his lack of understanding of 
her woman's nature to the background, as a thing 
of no consequence. 

"Mighty little will do for me," he said, "mighty 
little, Annie dear, if you will only tell a fellow you 
love him." 

Annie looked at him, and her thin, sweet face 
seemed to have a luminous quality, like a crescent 
moon. Her look was enough. 

"Then you do?" said Tom Reed. 
22 337 



THE COPY-CAT 

"You have never needed to ask," said Annie. 
"You knew." 

"I haven't been so sure as you think," said Tom. 
"Suppose you come over here and sit beside me. 
You look miles away." 

Annie laughed and blushed, but she obeyed. She 
sat beside Tom and let him put his arm around her. 
She sat up straight, by force of her instinctive 
maidenliness, but she kissed him back when he 
kissed her. 

"I haven't been so sure," repeated Tom. "Annie 
darling, why have I been unable to see more of you? 
I have fairly haunted your house, and seen the whole 
lot of your sisters, especially Imogen, but somehow 
or other you have been as slippery as an eel. I have 
always asked for you, but you were always out or 
busy." 

"I have been very busy," said Annie, evasively. 
She loved this young man with all her heart, but she 
had an enduring loyalty to her own flesh and blood. 

Tom was very literal. "Say, Annie," he blurted 
out, "I begin to think you have had to do most of 
the work over there. Now, haven't you.? Own up." 

Annie laughed sweetly. She was so happy that 
no sense of injury could possibly rankle within her. 
"Oh, well," she said, lightly. "Perhaps. I don't 
know. I guess housekeeping comes rather easier 
to me than to the others. I like it, you know, and 
work is always easier when one likes it. The other 
girls don't take to it so naturally, and they get very 
tired, and it has seemed often that I was the one 
who could hurry the work through and not mind." 

338 



DEAR ANNIE 

"I wonder if you ^vill stick up for me the way you 
do for your sisters when you are my wife?" said 
Tom, with a burst of love and admiration. Then 
he added: "Of course you are going to be my wife, 
Annie? You know what this means?" 

"If you think I ^vill make you as good a wife as 
you can find, " said Annie. 

"As good a wife! Annie, do you really know 
what you are?" 

"Just an ordinary girl, with no special talent for 
anything." 

"You are the most wonderful girl that ever walked 
the earth, " exclaimed Tom. "And as for talent, 
you have the best talent in the whole world; you 
can love people who are not worthy to tie your shoe- 
strings, and think you are looking up when in 
reality you are looking down. That is what I call 
the best talent in the whole world for a woman." 
Tom Reed was becoming almost subtle. 

Annie only laughed happily again. "Well, you 
will have to wait and find out," said she. 

"I suppose," said Tom, "that you came over 
here because }'OU were tired out, this hot weather. 
I think you were sensible, but I don't think you 
ought to be here alone." 

"I am not alone," replied Annie. "I have poor 
little Effie Hempstead with me." 

"That deaf-and-dumb child? I should think this 
heathen god would be about as much company." 

"Why, Tom, she is human, if she is deaf and 
dumb." 

Tom eyed her shrewdly. "What did you mean 

339 



THE COPY-CAT 

when you said you had broken your will?" he in- 
quired. 

"My will not to speak for a while," said Annie, 
faintly. 

"Not to speak — to any one.''" 

Annie nodded. 

"Then you have broken your resolution by speak- 
ing to me?" 

Annie nodded again. 

"But why shouldn't you speak? I don't under- 
stand." 

"I wondered how little I could say, and have 
you satisfied," Annie replied, sadly. 

Tom tightened his arm around her. "You pre- 
cious httle soul," he said. "I am satisfied. I know 
you have some good reason for not wanting to speak, 
but I am plaguey glad you spoke to me, for I should 
have been pretty well cast down if you hadn't, and 
to-morrow I have to go away." 

Annie leaned toward him. "Go away!" 

"Yes; I have to go to California about that con- 
founded Ames will case. And I don't know exactly 
where, on the Pacific coast, the parties I have to 
interview may be, and I may have to be away weeks, 
possibly months. Annie darhng, it did seem to me 
a cruel state of things to have to go so far, and leave 
you here, living in such a queer fashion, and not 
know how you felt. Lord! but I'm glad you had 
sense enough to call me, Annie." 

"I couldn't let you go by, when it came to it, 
and Tom — " 

"What, dear.?" 

34P 



DEAR ANNIE 

"I did an awful mean thing: something I never 
was guilt}- of before. I — Glistened." 

"Well, I don't see what harm it did. You didn't 
hear much to your or your sisters' disadvantage, 
that I can remember. They kept calling you ' dear.'" 

"Yes." said Annie, quickl)-. Again, such was her 
love and thankfulness that a great wave of love and 
forgiveness for her sisters swept over her. Annie had 
a nature compounded of depths of sweetness; nobody 
could be mistaken with regard to that. ^^ hat they 
did mistake was the possibility of even sweetness be- 
ing at bay at times, and remaining there. 

"You don't mean to speak to anybody else-f"' 
asked Tom. 

' Not for a year, if I can avoid it without making 
comment which might hurt father." 

"Why. dear: • 

"That is what I cannot tell }-ou, " replied Annie, 
looking into his face with a troubled smile. 

Tom looked at her in a puzzled wa}', then he 
kissed her. 

"Oh, well, dear," he said, "it is all right. I know 
perfectly- well you would do nothing in which 3'ou 
were not justified, and you have spoken to me, 
an^-wa\', and that is the main thing. I think if I 
had been obliged to start to-morrow without a word 
from you I shouldn't have cared a hang whether 
I ever came back or not. You are the only soul to 
hold me here; you know that, darling." 

" Yes," replied .\nnie. 

"You are the only one," repeated Tom, "but it 
seems to me this minute as if you were a whole host, 

341 



THE COPY-CAT 

you dear little soul. But I don't quite like to leave 
you here living alone, except for Effie." 

"Oh, I am within a stone's-throw of father's," 
said Annie, lightly. 

"I admit that. Still, you are alone. Annie, when 
are you going to marry me?" 

Annie regarded him with a clear, innocent look. 
She had lived such a busy life that her mind was 
unfilmed by dreams. "Whenever you like, after you 
come home," said she. 

"It can't be too soon for me. I want my wife and 
I want my home. What will you do while I am 
gone, dear?" 

Annie laughed. "Oh, I shall do what I have seen 
other girls do — get ready to be married." 

"That means sewing, lots of hemming and tucking 
and stitching, doesn't it.?" 

"Of course." 

"Girls are so funny," said Tom. "Now imagine a 
man sitting right down and sewing like mad on his 
collars and neckties and shirts the minute a girl 
said she'd marry him!" 

"Girls like it." 

"Well, I suppose they do," said Tom, and he 
looked down at Annie from a tender height of mascu- 
linity, and at the same time seemed to look up from 
the valley of one who cannot understand the subtle 
and poetical details in a woman's soul. 

He did not stay long after that, for it was late. 
As he passed through the gate, aftpr a tender fare- 
well, Annie watched him with shining eyes. She 
was now to be all alone, but two things she 

342 



DEAR ANNIE 

had, her freedom and her love, and they would 
suffice. 

The next morning Silas Hempstead, urged b)' his 
daughters, walked solemnly over to the next house, 
but he derived little satisfaction. Annie did not 
absolutely refuse to speak. She had begun to realize 
that carrying out her resolution to the extreme letter 
was impossible. But she said as little as she could. 

"I have come over here to live for the present. 
I am of age, and have a right to consult my own 
wishes. jNIy decision is unalterable." Having said 
this much, Annie closed her mouth and said no 
more. Silas argued and pleaded. Annie sat placidly 
sewing beside one front window of the sunny sitting- 
room. Effie, with a bit of fancy-work, sat at another. 
Finally Silas went home defeated, with a last word, 
half condemnatory, half placative. Silas was not the 
sort to stand firm against such feminine strength as 
his daughter Annie's. However, he secretly held 
her dearer than all his other children. 

After her father had gone, Annie sat taking even 
stitch after even stitch, but a few tears ran over her 
cheeks and fell upon the soft mass of muslin. Effie 
watched with shrewd, speculative silence, like a pet 
cat. Then suddenly she rose and went close to Annie, 
with her Uttle arms around her neck, and the poor 
dumb mouth repeating her little speeches: "Thank 
you, I am very well, thank you, I am very well," 
over and over. 

Annie kissed her fondly, and was aware of a sense 
of comfort and of love for this poor httle Effie. 
Still, after being nearly two months with the child, 

343 



THE COPY-CAT 

she was relieved when Felicia Hempstead came, the 
first of September, and wished to take Effie home 
with her. She had not gone to Europe, after all, but 
to the mountains, and upon her return had missed 
the little girl. 

Effie went willingly enough, but Annie discovered 
that she too missed her. Now loneliness had her 
fairly in its grip. She had a telephone installed, 
and gave her orders over that. Sometimes the sound 
of a human voice made her emotional to tears. 
Besides the voices over the telephone, Annie had 
nobody, for Benny returned to college soon after 
Effie left. Benny had been in the habit of coming in 
to see Annie, and she had not had the heart to 
check him. She talked to him very little, and knew 
that he was no telltale as far as she was concerned, 
although he waxed most communicative with regard 
to the others. A few days before he left he came 
over and begged her to return. 

"I know the girls have nagged you till you are 
fairly worn out," he said. "I know they don't tell 
things straight, but I don't believe they know it, 
and I don't see why you can't come home, and insist 
upon your rights, and not work so hard." 

"If I come home now it will be as it was before," 
said Annie. 

"Can't you stand up for yourself and not have 
it the same?" 

Annie shook her head. 

"Seems as if you could," said Benny. "I always 
thought a girl knew how to manage other girls. It 
is rather awful the way things go now over there. 

344 



DEAR ANNIE 

Father must be uncomfortable enough trying to 
eat the stuff they set before him and living in such 
a dirty house." 

Annie winced. "Is it so very dirty?" 

Benny whistled. 

"Is the food so bad?" 

Benny whistled again. 

"You advised me — or it amounted to the same 
thing — to take this stand," said Annie. 

"I know I did, but I didn't know how bad it 
would be. Guess I didn't half appreciate you myself, 
Annie. Well, you must do as you think best, but 
if you could look in over there your heart would 
ache." 

"My heart aches as it is," said Annie, sadly. 

Benny put an arm around her. "Poor girl!" he 
said. "It is a shame, but you are going to marry 
Tom. You ought not to have the heartache." 

"Marriage isn't everything," said Annie, "and 
my heart does ache, but — I can't go back there, 
unless — I can't make it clear to you, Benny, but it 
seems to me as if I couldn't go back there until the 
year is up, or I shouldn't be myself, and it seems, too, 
as if I should not be doing right by the girls. There 
are things more important even than doing work for 
others. I have got it through my head that I can 
be dreadfully selfish being unselfish." 

"Well, I suppose you are right," admitted Benny 
with a sigh. 

Then he kissed Annie and went away, and the 
blackness of lonehness settled down upon her. She 
had wondered at first that none of the village people 

345 



THE COPY-CAT 

came to see her, although she did not wish to talk to 
them; then she no longer wondered. She heard, with- 
out hearing, just what her sisters had said about her. 

That was a long winter for Annie Hempstead. 
Letters did not come very regularly from Tom Reed, 
for it was a season of heavy snowfalls and the mails 
were often delayed. The letters were all that she 
had for comfort and company. She had bought a 
canary-bird, adopted a stray kitten, and filled her 
sunny windows with plants. She sat beside them 
and sewed, and tried to be happy and content, but 
all the time there was a frightful uncertainty deep 
down within her heart as to whether or not she was 
doing right. She knew that her sisters were un- 
worthy, and yet her love and longing for them 
waxed greater and greater. As for her father, she 
loved him as she had never loved him before. The 
struggle grew terrible. Many a time she dressed 
herself in outdoor array and started to go home, 
but something always held her back. It was a 
strange conflict that endured through the winter 
months, the conflict of a loving, self-efi^acing heart 
with its own instincts. 

Toward the last of February her father came over 
at dusk. Annie ran to the door, and he entered. 
He looked unkempt and dejected. He did not say 
much, but sat down and looked about him with a 
half-angry, half-discouraged air. Annie went out 
into the kitchen and broiled some beefsteak, and 
creamed some potatoes, and made tea and toast. 
Then she called him into the sitting-room, and he 
ate like one famished. 

346 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Your sister Susan does the best she can," he said, 
when he had finished, "and lately Jane has been try- 
ing, but they don't seem to have the knack. I 
don't want to urge you, Annie, but — " 

"You know when I am married you will have to 
get on without me," Annie said, in a low voice. 

"Yes, but in the mean time you might, if you 
were home, show Susan and Jane." 

"Father," said Annie, "you know if I came home 
now it would be just the same as it was before. 
You know if I give in and break my word with my- 
self to stay away a year what they will think 
and do." 

"I suppose they might take advantage," admitted 
Silas, heavily. "I fear you have always given in 
to them too much for their own good." 

"Then I shall not give in now," said Annie, and 
she shut her mouth tightly. 

There came a peal of the cracked door-bell, and 
Silas started with a curious, guilty look. Annie 
regarded him sharply. "Who is it, father?" 

"Well, I heard Imogen say to Eliza that she 
thought it was very foolish for them all to stay over 
there and have the extra care and expense, when 
you were here." 

"You mean that the girls — ?" 

"I think they did have a little idea that they 
might come here and make you a little visit — " 

Annie was at the front door with a bound. The 
key turned in the lock and a bolt shot into place. 
Then she returned to her father, and her face was 

very white. 

347 



THE COPY-CAT 

"You did not lock your door against your own 
sisters?" he gasped. 

"God forgive me, I did." 

The bell pealed again. Annie stood still, her 
mouth quivering in a strange, rigid fashion. The 
curtains in the dining-room windows were not drawn. 
Suddenly one window showed full of her sisters' 
faces. It was Susan who spoke. 

"Annie, you can't mean to lock us out.?" Susan's 
face looked strange and wild, peering in out of the 
dark. Imogen's handsome face towered over her 
shoulder. 

"We think it advisable to close our house and 
make you a visit," she said, quite distinctly through 
the glass. 

Then Jane said, with an inaudible sob, "Dear 
Annie, you can't mean to keep us out!" 

Annie looked at them and said not a word. Their 
half-commanding, half-imploring voices continued 
a while. Then the faces disappeared. 

Annie turned to her father. "God knows if I 
have done right," she said, "but I am doing what 
you have taken me to account for not doing." 

"Yes, I know," said Silas. He sat for a while 
silent. Then he rose, kissed Annie — something he 
had seldom done — and went home. After he had 
gone Annie sat down and cried. She did not go to 
bed that night. The cat jumped up in her lap, and 
she was glad of that soft, purring comfort. It 
seemed to her as if she had committed a great crime, 
and as if she had suffered martyrdom. She loved 
her father and her sisters with such intensity that 

348 



DEAR ANNIE 

her heart groaned with the weight of pure love. For 
the time it seemed to her that she loved them more 
than the man whom she was to marry. She sat there 
and held herself, as with chains of agony, from rush- 
ing out into the night, home to them all, and break- 
ing her vow. 

It was never quite so bad after that night, for 
Annie compromised. She baked bread and cake 
and pies, and carried them over after nightfall and 
left them at her father's door. She even, later on, 
made a pot of coffee, and hurried over with it in the 
dawn-light, always watching behind a corner of a 
curtain until she saw an arm reached out for it. All 
this comforted Annie, and, moreover, the time was 
drawing near when she could go home. 

Tom Reed had been delayed much longer than 
he expected. He would not be home before early 
fall. They would not be married until November, 
and she would have several months at home first. 

At last the day came. Out in Silas Hempstead's 
front yard the grass waved tall, dotted with disks 
of clover. Benny was home, and he had been over 
to see Annie every day since his return. That morn- 
ing when Annie looked out of her window the first 
thing she saw was Benny waving a scythe in awkward 
sweep among the grass and clover. An immense 
pity seized her at the sight. She realized that he 
was doing this for her, conquering his indolence. 
She almost sobbed. 

"Dear, dear boy, he will cut himself," she thought. 
Then she conquered her own love and pity, even as 
her brother was conquering his sloth. She under- 

349 



THE COPY-CAT 

stood clearly that it was better for Benny to go on 
with his task even if he did cut himself. 

The grass was laid low when she went home, and 
Benny stood, a conqueror in a battle-field of summer, 
leaning on his scythe. 

"Only look, Annie," he cried out, like a child. 
"I have cut all the grass." 

Annie wanted to hug him. Instead she laughed. 
"It was time to cut it," she said. Her tone was cool, 
but her eyes were adoring. 

Benny laid down his scythe, took her by the arm, 
and led her into the house. Silas and his other daugh- 
ters were in the sitting-room, and the room was so 
orderly it was painful. The ornaments on the man- 
tel-shelf stood as regularly as soldiers on parade, 
and it was the same with the chairs. Even the cush- 
ions on the sofa were arranged with one corner over- 
lapping another. The curtains were drawn at ex- 
actly the same height from the sill. The carpet 
looked as if swept threadbare. 

Annie's first feeling was of worried astonishment; 
then her eye caught a glimpse of Susan's kitchen 
apron tucked under a sofa pillow, and of layers of 
dust on the table, and she felt relieved. After all, 
what she had done had not completely changed the 
sisters, whom she loved, faults and all. Annie 
realized how horrible it would have been to find her 
loved ones completely changed, even for the better. 
They would have seemed like strange, aloof angels 
to her. 

They all welcomed her with a slight stiffness, yet 
with cordiality. Then Silas made a little speech. 

350 



DEAR ANNIE 

"Your father and your sisters are glad to welcome 
you home, dear Annie," he said, "and your sisters 
wish me to say for them that they reahze that pos- 
sibly they may have underestimated your tasks and 
overestimated their own. In short, they may not 
have been — " 

Silas hesitated, and Benny finished. "What the 
girls want you to know, Annie, is that they have 
found out they have been a parcel of pigs." 

"We fear we have been selfish without realizing 
it," said Jane, and she kissed Annie, as did Susan 
and Eliza. Imogen, looking very handsome in her 
blue linen, with her embroidery in her hands, did 
riot kiss her sister. She was not given to demon- 
strations, but she smiled complacently at her. 

"We are all very glad to have dear Annie back, 
I am sure," said she, "and now that it is all over, 
we all feel that it has been for the best, although it 
has seemed very singular, and made, I fear, con- 
siderable talk. But, of course, when one person in 
a family insists upon taking everything upon her- 
self, it must result in making the others selfish." 

Annie did not hear one word that Imogen said. 
She was crying on Susan's shoulder. 

"Oh, I am so glad to be home," she sobbed. 

And they all stood gathered about her, rejoicing 
and fond of her, but she was the one lover among 
them all who had been capable of hurting them and 
hurting herself for love's sake. 



THE END